Selected quad for the lemma: religion_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
religion_n body_n draw_v great_a 135 3 2.0926 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A56472 A treatise of three conversions of England from paganism to Christian religion. The first two parts I. Under the Apostles, in the first age after Christ, II. Under Pope Eleutherius and King Lucius, in the second age, III. Under Pope Gregory the Great and King Ethelbert, in the sixth age : with divers other matters thereunto appertaining : dedicated to the Catholics of England, with a new addition ... upon the news of the late Queens death, and the succession of His Majesty of Scotland to the crown of England / by N.D., author of the Ward-word. Parsons, Robert, 1546-1610. 1688 (1688) Wing P575; ESTC R36659 362,766 246

There are 31 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

endure_v you_o will_v easy_o see_v the_o fruit_n of_o that_o new_a gospel_n 4._o for_o first_o all_o begin_v with_o manifest_a perfidiousness_n against_o the_o old_a king_n that_o be_v dead_a for_o whereas_o he_o have_v two_o thing_n in_o abomination_n above_o the_o rest_n first_o that_o his_o son_n shall_v have_v a_o protector_n consider_v the_o fatal_a event_n thereof_o in_o former_a time_n for_o which_o cause_n he_o appoint_v sixteen_o tutor_n to_o govern_v with_o equal_a authority_n during_o the_o minority_n of_o his_o son_n the_o other_o that_o heresy_n but_o especial_o zwinglianism_n shall_v enter_v into_o his_o realm_n both_o these_o thing_n be_v determine_v contrary_a to_o the_o say_a king_n will_v and_o ordination_n within_o three_o day_n after_o his_o death_n and_o above_o a_o dozen_o before_o he_o be_v bury_v for_o that_o the_o young_a child_n be_v proclaim_v king_n upon_o the_o 28._o of_o january_n and_o his_o father_n not_o bury_v until_o the_o 14._o of_o february_n his_o uncle_n the_o earl_n of_o hartford_n be_v make_v protector_n both_o of_o the_o king_n and_o whole_a realm_n upon_o the_o first_o of_o the_o say_a month_n of_o february_n follow_v and_o this_o by_o the_o private_a authority_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o executor_n only_o without_o expect_v any_o parliament_n or_o consent_v of_o the_o realm_n for_o so_o great_a a_o change_n and_o charge_n as_o that_o be_v day_n 5._o and_o albeit_o for_o obtain_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o executor_n to_o this_o mutation_n great_a advancement_n and_o dignity_n be_v promise_v and_o some_o of_o they_o also_o perform_v for_o that_o the_o lord_n dudley_n be_v make_v earl_n of_o warwick_n the_o lord_n parr_n marquis_n of_o northampton_n the_o lord_n chancellor_n wriothesley_n be_v create_v earl_n of_o southampton_n sir_n thomas_n seymor_n be_v make_v lord_n sudley_n and_o high_a admiral_n of_o england_n and_o other_o the_o like_a and_o this_o within_o fifteen_o day_n after_o the_o protector_n advancement_n and_o though_o hope_v also_o be_v give_v to_o those_o that_o be_v catholic_o incline_v as_o the_o most_o of_o they_o be_v if_o they_o have_v follow_v their_o conscience_n that_o no_o great_a alteration_n of_o religion_n shall_v be_v make_v for_o the_o present_a yet_o twenty_o day_n have_v scarce_o pass_v after_o this_o advancement_n but_o that_o the_o protector_n finger_n do_v so_o eager_o itch_v to_o be_v do_v and_o tamper_n about_o innovation_n in_o religion_n 1547._o as_o upon_o the_o 6._o of_o march_n next_o follow_v he_o send_v away_o commissioner_n into_o all_o part_n of_o the_o realm_n to_o pull_v down_o image_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a ornament_n throughout_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o realm_n and_o to_o make_v other_o innovation_n by_o his_o authority_n which_o now_o in_o all_o thing_n he_o will_v have_v to_o be_v the_o king_n and_o for_o that_o the_o chancellor_n wriothesley_n resist_v the_o same_o and_o will_v have_v have_v it_o stay_v until_o a_o parliament_n may_v be_v call_v his_o office_n be_v take_v from_o he_o thereby_o to_o terrify_v other_o from_o speak_v in_o like_a case_n bishop_n tonstall_n also_o be_v put_v beside_o the_o council_n for_o like_a offence_n though_o he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o sixteen_o executor_n appoint_v by_o king_n henry_n so_o as_o now_o the_o protector_n will_v needs_o have_v all_o thing_n absolute_o in_o his_o own_o hand_n both_o without_o law_n and_o before_o law_n yea_o express_o against_o the_o law_n of_o king_n henry_n yet_o in_o force_n 6._o and_o for_o that_o both_o he_o and_o his_o follower_n do_v easy_o see_v the_o affection_n of_o the_o realm_n to_o be_v whole_o against_o these_o mutation_n as_o before_o we_o have_v show_v in_o the_o end_n of_o our_o former_a part_n he_o devise_v with_o the_o lord_n dudley_n who_o soothe_v he_o in_o all_o at_o that_o time_n the_o journey_n into_o scotland_n of_o musselborough_n field_n which_o all_o man_n know_v time_n under_o pretence_n to_o gain_v the_o young_a queen_n by_o force_n to_o marry_v with_o the_o king._n but_o yet_o every_o man_n of_o judgement_n and_o discourse_n do_v easy_o see_v that_o not_o to_o be_v a_o thing_n likely_a to_o get_v such_o a_o princess_n by_o way_n of_o arm_n from_o her_o subject_n neither_o be_v king_n edward_n of_o such_o age_n as_o they_o need_v to_o have_v hasten_v so_o much_o to_o get_v he_o a_o wife_n so_o soon_o he_o be_v but_o nine_o year_n old_a but_o that_o the_o matter_n may_v have_v be_v treat_v peaceable_o with_o the_o scot_n to_o have_v concur_v willing_o for_o their_o own_o interest_n to_o that_o conjunction_n of_o both_o realm_n by_o that_o marriage_n according_a as_o they_o have_v do_v in_o king_n henry_n time_n and_o so_o write_v bishop_n gardener_n to_o the_o protector_n present_o upon_o the_o first_o sermon_n he_o hear_v the_o bishop_n of_o st._n david_n in_o wales_n make_v in_o london_n about_o that_o matter_n i_o mean_v to_o exhort_v the_o people_n to_o the_o enterprise_n of_o scotland_n for_o that_o now_o all_o preacher_n be_v set_v a_o work_n by_o the_o say_a protector_n and_o earl_n of_o warwick_n to_o show_v the_o great_a glory_n and_o utility_n of_o that_o attempt_n 7._o but_o the_o true_a cause_n of_o this_o enterprise_n be_v indeed_o to_o have_v thereby_o a_o just_a pretence_n and_o occasion_n to_o raise_v a_o army_n within_o the_o land_n and_o to_o call_v in_o foreign_a force_n as_o they_o do_v both_o german_n and_o italian_n under_o petro_n gamboa_n that_o have_v serve_v king_n henry_n at_o bologne_n and_o other_o leader_n who_o they_o think_v will_v be_v always_o more_o sure_a unto_o they_o than_o english_a soldier_n in_o occasion_n of_o religion_n and_o so_o it_o fall_v out_o indeed_o for_o the_o very_a next_o year_n after_o these_o foreign_a soldier_n do_v stand_v the_o protector_n in_o very_o good_a stead_n when_o divers_a shire_n of_o the_o realm_n take_v arm_n for_o defence_n of_o their_o religion_n in_o the_o three_o year_n of_o king_n edward_n reign_n as_o after_o you_o shall_v hear_v 8._o this_o than_o be_v the_o first_o summer_n work_n after_o king_n edward_n coronation_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o protector_n make_v his_o voyage_n towards_o scotland_n have_v first_o send_v commissioner_n and_o preacher_n as_o you_o have_v hear_v into_o all_o shire_n to_o preach_v against_o image_n procession_n litany_n pilgrimage_n mass_n pray_v to_o saint_n and_o this_o of_o his_o own_o authority_n without_o and_o against_o law_n for_o that_o no_o parliament_n have_v yet_o disannul_v the_o religion_n leave_v by_o king_n henry_n which_o thing_n so_o much_o grieve_v the_o common_a catholic_a people_n as_o they_o begin_v to_o exclaim_v every_o where_o against_o the_o say_a commissioner_n and_o one_o of_o they_o call_v body_n be_v slay_v in_o cornwall_n for_o which_o divers_a man_n be_v execute_v in_o sundry_a place_n of_o that_o shire_n and_o a_o priest_n send_v up_o to_o be_v hang_v draw_v and_o quarter_v in_o smithfield_n for_o the_o terror_n of_o other_o for_o that_o he_o be_v say_v by_o some_o to_o have_v be_v accessary_a to_o the_o say_v body_n death_n 9_o and_o this_o be_v the_o beginning_n of_o plant_v new_a religion_n in_o england_n england_n by_o authority_n of_o the_o protector_n under_o a_o child-king_n which_o protector_n notwithstanding_o for_o that_o he_o mistrust_v his_o home-doctor_n as_o well_o as_o his_o home-souldier_n to_o be_v sufficient_a for_o so_o great_a a_o work_n as_o the_o plant_n of_o a_o new_a religion_n he_o send_v over_o into_o germany_n for_o divers_a strange_a sectary_n of_o what_o religion_n soever_o so_o they_o be_v not_o catholic_a but_o especial_o he_o desire_v to_o have_v apostate-frier_n that_o have_v tie_v themselves_o to_o sister_n assure_v himself_o that_o they_o will_v be_v most_o pliable_a to_o his_o purpose_n and_o so_o there_o come_v into_o england_n martin_n bucer_n a_o dominican_n friar_n who_o unto_o that_o day_n have_v be_v a_o earnest_n lutheran_n and_o peter_n martyr_n a_o canon-regular_a that_o incline_v to_o zuinglianism_n but_o yet_o come_v with_o great_a indifferency_n to_o preach_v and_o teach_v what_o he_o shall_v be_v appoint_v 627._o bernardinus_fw-la ochinus_n be_v the_o three_o who_o have_v be_v a_o franciscan_a friar_n and_o by_o take_v a_o woman_n have_v lose_v all_o religion_n write_v a_o book_n de_fw-fr polygamia_n for_o have_v many_o wife_n at_o once_o and_o die_v after_o a_o jew_n 10._o these_o three_o be_v distribute_v into_o three_o principal_a fountain_n of_o the_o land_n london_n oxford_n and_o cambridge_n and_o with_o these_o join_a other_o of_o the_o same_o coat_n and_o profession_n as_o coverdale_n a_o augustine_n friar_n bale_n a_o carmelite_n and_o other-like_a englishman_n as_o before_o we_o have_v show_v all_o which_o beginning_n to_o preach_v in_o divers_a part_n of_o the_o land_n fill_v man_n head_n with_o novelty_n and_o
a_o treatise_n of_o three_o conversion_n of_o england_n from_o paganism_n to_o christian_a religion_n i._o under_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o first_o age_n after_o christ_n ii_o under_o pope_n eleutherius_fw-la and_o king_n lucius_n in_o the_o second_o age._n iii_o under_o pope_n gregory_n the_o great_a and_o king_n ethelbert_n in_o the_o six_o age_n with_o divers_a other_o matter_n thereunto_o appertain_v the_o first_o two_o part_n dedicate_v to_o the_o catholic_n of_o england_n with_o a_o new_a addition_n to_o the_o say_a catholic_n upon_o the_o news_n of_o the_o late_a queen_n death_n and_o the_o succession_n of_o his_o majesty_n of_o scotland_n to_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n by_o n._n d._n author_n of_o the_o ward-word_n inquire_v of_o ancient_a time_n before_o you_o remember_v the_o old_a day_n of_o your_o forefather_n consider_v of_o every_o age_n as_o they_o have_v pass_v ask_v your_o father_n and_o he_o will_v tell_v you_o demand_v of_o your_o ancestor_n and_o they_o will_v declare_v unto_o you_o deut._n four_o 32._o london_n reprint_v by_o henry_n hill_n printer_n to_o the_o king_n be_v most_o excellent_a majesty_n for_o his_o household_n and_o chapel_n mdclxxxviii_o the_o epistle_n dedicatory_a to_o the_o catholic_n of_o england_n though_o though_o when_o i_o write_v the_o preface_n that_o do_v ensue_v i_o have_v no_o purpose_n to_o add_v any_o epistle_n dedicatory_a most_o dearly-beloved_n and_o worthy_a catholic_n yet_o afterward_o think_v of_o some_o other_o circumstance_n both_o of_o matter_n and_o time_n i_o deem_v it_o not_o amiss_o to_o say_v somewhat_o also_o in_o this_o kind_n of_o dedication_n both_o for_o present_v this_o work_n to_o who_o principal_o it_o be_v due_a as_o also_o for_o advertisement_n in_o some_o few_o point_n which_o the_o present_a state_n of_o your_o affair_n do_v seem_v to_o require_v 2._o and_o for_o the_o first_o dedication_n who_o do_v not_o see_v and_o consider_v that_o this_o treatise_n of_o the_o first_o plant_v of_o christian_n catholic_n faith_n in_o england_n with_o the_o continuance_n and_o preservation_n thereof_o from_o age_n to_o age_n unto_o our_o time_n do_v chief_o and_o principal_o belong_v to_o you_o that_o be_v catholic_o at_o this_o day_n most_o worthy_a child_n of_o so_o renown_a parent_n most_o honourable_a offspring_n of_o so_o excellent_a ancestor_n most_o glorious_a posterity_n of_o so_o famous_a antiquity_n who_o future_a age_n will_v both_o esteem_v and_o extol_v above_o many_o of_o your_o predecessor_n for_o retain_v that_o in_o time_n of_o war_n which_o they_o leave_v unto_o you_o in_o possession_n of_o peace_n and_o for_o defend_v that_o by_o so_o singular_a constancy_n of_o suffering_n which_o they_o both_o receive_v and_o bequeath_v unto_o you_o by_o quiet_a tradition_n 3._o which_o tradition_n be_v set_v down_o prove_v and_o declare_v most_o clear_o in_o this_o ensue_a work_n i_o do_v by_o offer_v the_o same_o unto_o you_o but_o present_v you_o with_o your_o own_o to_o wit_n the_o history_n of_o your_o own_o house_n the_o record_n and_o chronicle_n of_o your_o own_o family_n the_o pedigree_n and_o genealogy_n of_o your_o own_o forefather_n the_o antiquity_n and_o nobility_n of_o your_o own_o progenitor_n together_o with_o your_o just_a title_n and_o claim_n to_o their_o inheritance_n produce_v joint_o for_o the_o same_o your_o undoubted_a charter_n enrollment_n evidence_n write_n and_o witness_n which_o no_o man_n with_o reason_n can_v deny_v or_o call_v in_o doubt_n 4._o and_o furthermore_o i_o do_v add_v in_o the_o end_n book_n for_o more_o full_a compliment_n of_o this_o whole_a cause_n all_o such_o former_a false_a and_o wrong_a suit_n pretence_n plea_n intrusion_n surreption_n or_o other_o like_a shift_n or_o wrangling_n which_o any_o heretic_n to_o this_o day_n but_o especial_o these_o of_o our_o time_n have_v make_v hitherto_o about_o the_o same_o for_o show_v of_o some_o title_n or_o right_n on_o their_o part_n to_o this_o inheritance_n and_o succession_n of_o you_o and_o last_o i_o do_v produce_v also_o the_o judgement_n censure_n sentence_n and_o arrest_n of_o all_o christian_a parliament_n of_o the_o world_n to_o wit_n the_o determination_n of_o all_o the_o high_a ecclesiastical_a tribunal_n in_o your_o favour_n by_o all_o which_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o your_o right_n and_o title_n remain_v most_o evident_a and_o clear_a to_o all_o man_n of_o judgement_n even_o to_o the_o enemy_n or_o adversary_n themselves_o wherefore_o most_o just_o i_o do_v dedicate_v this_o treatise_n unto_o you_o which_o so_o many_o way_n and_o for_o so_o many_o reason_n be_v your_o own_o and_o so_o much_o for_o the_o first_o point_n 5._o the_o second_o also_o about_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o present_a time_n be_v already_o somewhat_o touch_v in_o that_o we_o have_v say_v how_o by_o god_n holy_a providence_n you_o be_v bear_v in_o this_o time_n of_o war_n tribulation_n and_o contradiction_n instead_o of_o that_o large_a and_o long_a peace_n and_o tranquillity_n which_o your_o ancestor_n enjoy_v in_o the_o use_n of_o that_o catholic_a religion_n for_o which_o you_o strive_v and_o suffer_v now_o which_o thing_n though_o for_o the_o present_a it_o seem_v unpleasant_a and_o distasteful_a to_o flesh_n and_o blood_n yet_o will_v the_o hour_n come_v when_o it_o shall_v prove_v a_o most_o singular_a benefit_n and_o privilege_n to_o such_o as_o have_v receive_v grace_n to_o manifest_v themselves_o by_o this_o occasion_n trial._n see_v that_o according_a to_o the_o apostle_n this_o be_v one_o principal_a end_n in_o god_n everlasting_a wisdom_n for_o permission_n of_o heresy_n ut_fw-la qui_fw-la probati_fw-la sunt_fw-la manifesti_fw-la fiant_fw-la that_o those_o that_o be_v of_o proof_n be_v make_v manifest_a by_o this_o occasion_n 11._o 6._o wherefore_o see_v as_o the_o same_o apostle_n say_v in_o another_o place_n it_o be_v give_v to_o you_o dear_a catholic_n that_o live_v in_o england_n at_o this_o day_n not_o only_o to_o believe_v in_o he_o 1._o but_o also_o to_o suffer_v for_o he_o a_o singular_a privilege_n by_o his_o account_n yea_o and_o that_o we_o may_v say_v of_o you_o as_o he_o say_v and_o glory_v of_o himself_o and_o his_o fellow_n vincula_fw-la vestra_fw-la manifesta_fw-la fiunt_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la in_o omni_fw-la praetorio_fw-la ibidem_fw-la your_o bond_n for_o christ_n be_v make_v notorious_a throughout_o all_o the_o tribunal_n and_o judgment-seat_n of_o our_o country_n and_o yet_o further_o as_o he_o write_v to_o his_o dear_a thessalonian_n in_o their_o high_a praise_n and_o commendation_n you_o be_v become_v such_o follower_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n 1._o as_o receive_v the_o word_n of_o god_n with_o joy_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o great_a tribulation_n you_o be_v make_v a_o example_n or_o spectacle_n to_o all_o other_o faithful_a people_n in_o macedonia_n and_o achaia_n for_o that_o from_o you_o be_v divulge_v the_o word_n of_o god_n not_o only_o in_o macedonia_n and_o achaia_n but_o also_o in_o all_o other_o place_n by_o reason_n of_o your_o faith_n which_o be_v publish_v everywhere_o throughout_o the_o world._n 7._o see_v i_o say_v all_o this_o may_v be_v true_o write_v of_o you_o and_o that_o our_o country_n have_v get_v more_o honourable_a renown_n in_o foreign_a catholic_a nation_n and_o the_o church_n of_o god_n more_o glory_n and_o comfort_n by_o this_o your_o patience_n and_o suffering_n in_o these_o few_o latter_a year_n than_o by_o the_o peaceable_a calm_a of_o many_o former_a age_n of_o your_o ancestor_n i_o know_v no_o true_a servant_n of_o god_n that_o together_o with_o the_o commiseration_n of_o your_o present_a hard_a afflict_a state_n receive_v not_o also_o particular_a consolation_n by_o your_o integrity_n and_o constancy_n pray_v for_o your_o perseverance_n in_o that_o most_o honourable_a course_n which_o hitherto_o you_o have_v hold_v of_o true_a obedience_n to_o almighty_a god_n in_o matter_n of_o your_o soul_n catholic_o and_o loyal_a behaviour_n of_o duty_n towards_o your_o temporal_a prince_n in_o all_o worldly_a affair_n which_o course_n though_o it_o have_v not_o escape_v the_o calumnious_a tongue_n and_o pen_n of_o some_o carp_a adversary_n yet_o be_v it_o justifiable_a and_o glorious_a both_o before_o god_n and_o man_n where_o reason_n rule_v and_o not_o passion_n and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o the_o wisdom_n and_o moderation_n both_o of_o her_o majesty_n and_o her_o sage_a council_n will_v rather_o in_o this_o point_n ponder_v your_o own_o fact_n than_o your_o adversary_n word_n as_o also_o consider_v how_o rare_a such_o example_n of_o patience_n be_v in_o these_o our_o day_n where_o so_o great_a a_o multitude_n for_o so_o many_o year_n have_v pass_v under_o the_o rod_n of_o so_o sharp_a affliction_n which_o be_v your_o singular_a commendation_n with_o all_o wise_a and_o godly_a man_n let_v caviller_n and_o calumniator_n say_v what_o they_o will_v to_o the_o contrary_n 8._o but_o god_n holy_a hand_n have_v not_o
for_o her_o only_a son_n i_o hold_v to_o be_v that_o other_o bless_v beforementioned_a of_o so_o many_o rare_a part_n discover_v in_o his_o majesty_n person_n which_o true_o though_o i_o have_v have_v ever_o in_o great_a esteem_n upon_o the_o report_n of_o other_o man_n yet_o have_v the_o same_o be_v exceed_o increase_v upon_o the_o late_a read_n of_o a_o book_n write_v i_o suppose_v some_o year_n ago_o by_o his_o highness_n but_o print_v in_o london_n this_o very_a year_n 1603._o doron_n this_o book_n be_v entitle_v in_o the_o greek_a tongue_n basilicon_fw-la doron_n to_o wit_n a_o kingly_a gift_n send_v by_o his_o majesty_n unto_o the_o prince_n his_o elder_a son_n now_o also_o our_o lord_n be_v in_o truth_n a_o golden_a gift_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o excellent_a matter_n contain_v therein_o and_o it_o discover_v so_o many_o rare_a part_n in_o the_o writer_n as_o may_v just_o give_v all_o catholic_n good_a hope_n to_o see_v one_o day_n that_o fulfil_v in_o his_o majesty_n which_o most_o they_o desire_v and_o will_v to_o god_n this_o singular_a treatise_n have_v appear_v early_o to_o the_o world._n 6._o for_o set_v aside_o one_o point_v only_o therein_o handle_v which_o be_v religion_n wherein_o his_o majesty_n must_v needs_o speak_v according_a to_o his_o persuasion_n and_o education_n in_o that_o behalf_n all_o other_o matter_n be_v such_o and_o so_o set_v down_o as_o you_o will_v exceed_o delight_v therein_o and_o profit_n also_o thereby_o if_o you_o read_v with_o attention_n and_o ponder_v all_o well_o but_o especial_o three_o point_n above_o other_o i_o note_v with_o no_o small_a admiration_n to_o myself_o which_o i_o speak_v in_o all_o sincerity_n of_o truth_n as_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o almighty_a god._n the_o first_o be_v book_n the_o great_a variety_n of_o select_a learning_n in_o such_o a_o person_n and_o so_o occupy_v otherwise_o as_o his_o majesty_n be_v second_o the_o great_a maturity_n of_o judgement_n in_o apply_v the_o same_o so_o fit_o to_o the_o peculiar_a affair_n of_o scotland_n the_o three_o be_v the_o fervent_a and_o extraordinary_a affection_n of_o piety_n towards_o god_n and_o godliness_n utter_v in_o so_o effectual_a word_n and_o upon_o so_o good_a occasion_n throughout_o the_o whole_a book_n as_o a_o man_n may_v easy_o see_v it_o come_v from_o the_o heart_n and_o how_o high_o this_o one_o point_n of_o piety_n be_v to_o be_v esteem_v in_o so_o high_a and_o mighty_a a_o prince_n especial_o in_o these_o our_o day_n when_o contention_n in_o religion_n have_v wrought_v so_o great_a coldness_n of_o religious_a piety_n in_o many_o great_a man_n heart_n every_o wife_n and_o pious_a man_n will_v easy_o consider_v 7._o but_o i_o will_v go_v no_o further_o in_o this_o matter_n lest_o i_o may_v seem_v to_o flatter_v which_o i_o hate_v with_o my_o heart_n and_o his_o majesty_n detest_v the_o vice_n most_o prudent_o and_o christianly_o in_o this_o his_o book_n only_o i_o will_v add_v for_o our_o common_a comfort_n that_o it_o seem_v impossible_a unto_o i_o that_o such_o a_o wit_n and_o so_o godly-affected_n a_o mind_n as_o god_n have_v bestow_v upon_o his_o majesty_n can_v be_v long_o detain_v with_o the_o vanity_n and_o inanity_n of_o sect_n and_o heresy_n where_o no_o ground_n no_o head_n no_o certain_a principle_n no_o sure_a rule_n or_o method_n to_o try_v the_o truth_n another_o no_o one_o reason_n at_o all_o can_v be_v find_v why_o a_o man_n shall_v rather_o be_v of_o one_o sect_n than_o another_o but_o only_o every_a one_o own_o will_n and_o particular_a judgement_n ground_v as_o each_o one_o will_v pretend_v upon_o the_o scripture_n whereof_o yet_o himself_o only_o will_v be_v the_o judge_n and_o interpreter_n which_o thing_n be_v of_o themselves_o most_o absurd_a in_o so_o weighty_a a_o cause_n as_o religion_n be_v that_o concern_v the_o eternal_a salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n it_o be_v to_o be_v hope_v that_o his_o majesty_n have_v the_o former_a two_o part_n of_o judgement_n and_o pious_a affection_n in_o that_o excellency_n as_o have_v be_v say_v will_v easy_o come_v in_o time_n to_o discover_v the_o same_o and_o therewithal_o the_o contrary_a substantial_a ground_n and_o clear_a demonstration_n for_o the_o catholic_a religion_n whereunto_o this_o treatise_n also_o of_o the_o first_o plant_n of_o christian_a religion_n in_o our_o country_n may_v in_o my_o opinion_n give_v no_o small_a help_n and_o light_n if_o it_o may_v please_v his_o majesty_n to_o bestow_v the_o cast_n of_o his_o eye_n upon_o the_o same_o 8._o wherefore_o to_o conclude_v this_o addition_n to_o my_o former_a letter_n god_n have_v wrought_v so_o strange_o this_o change_n as_o here_o be_v report_v with_o so_o general_a peace_n and_o applause_n of_o the_o whole_a realm_n you_o be_v to_o expect_v at_o his_o divine_a majesty_n hand_n the_o effect_n that_o be_v conform_v to_o his_o fatherly_a love_n and_o care_n ever_o hitherto_o show_v towards_o you_o and_o as_o for_o the_o person_n now_o advance_v i_o know_v most_o certain_o that_o there_o be_v never_o any_o doubt_n or_o difference_n among_o you_o but_o that_o ever_o you_o desire_v his_o advancement_n above_o all_o other_o as_o the_o only_a heir_n of_o that_o renown_a mother_n for_o who_o your_o fervent_a zeal_n be_v know_v to_o the_o world_n and_o how_o much_o you_o have_v suffer_v by_o her_o adversary_n for_o the_o same_o yet_o do_v i_o confess_v that_o touch_v the_o disposition_n of_o the_o person_n for_o the_o place_n and_o manner_n of_o his_o advancement_n all_o zealous_a catholic_n have_v both_o wish_v and_o pray_v that_o he_o may_v first_o be_v a_o catholic_a and_o then_o our_o king_n this_o be_v our_o bind_a duty_n to_o wish_v and_o his_o great_a good_a to_o be_v obtain_v for_o he_o and_o to_o this_o end_n and_o no_o other_o i_o assure_v myself_o have_v be_v direct_v whatsoever_o may_v have_v be_v say_v write_v or_o do_v by_o any_o catholic_a which_o with_o some_o other_o may_v breed_v disgust_n 9_o now_o it_o have_v not_o please_v almighty_a god_n to_o give_v we_o our_o desire_n in_o the_o order_n of_o our_o wish_n but_o first_o to_o make_v he_o our_o king_n 3._o and_o then_o to_o leave_v we_o in_o hope_n of_o the_o other_o at_o his_o due_a time_n what_o shall_v we_o say_v in_o this_o and_o all_o the_o rest_n but_z as_o heli_n do_v dominus_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la bonum_fw-la est_fw-la in_o oculis_fw-la suis_fw-la faciat_fw-la he_o be_v lord_n let_v he_o do_v as_o he_o think_v best_o and_o with_o patience_n humility_n longanimity_n and_o obedience_n seek_v by_o continual_a prayer_n to_o hasten_v that_o time_n of_o our_o full_a joy_n by_o his_o majesty_n conversion_n which_o we_o trust_v in_o his_o everlasting_a wisdom_n and_o infallible_a providence_n be_v already_o determine_v to_o be_v svo_fw-la tempore_fw-la and_o in_o the_o mean_a space_n see_v it_o be_v here_o report_v that_o catholic_n according_a to_o their_o ability_n have_v show_v themselves_o in_o every_o country_n both_o ready_a and_o forward_o to_o advance_v his_o majesty_n present_a admission_n to_o the_o crown_n i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o they_o shall_v find_v the_o effect_n of_o his_o clemency_n for_o their_o delivery_n out_o of_o such_o affliction_n calamity_n and_o oppression_n as_o late_o they_o have_v suffer_v by_o the_o instigation_n principal_o of_o such_o people_n who_o manner_n be_v most_o excellent_o and_o prudent_o describe_v by_o his_o majesty_n in_o the_o second_o book_n of_o his_o worthy_a treatise_n as_o to_o himself_o well_o experience_v 10._o and_o it_o be_v no_o small_a comfort_n in_o this_o behalf_n to_o have_v a_o king_n of_o who_o we_o may_v true_o use_v the_o word_n of_o st._n paul_n 5._o which_o he_o speak_v of_o christ_n didicit_fw-la ex_fw-la eye_n quae_fw-la passus_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n he_o have_v learn_v by_o that_o himself_o have_v suffer_v by_o the_o same_o kind_n of_o men._n and_o true_o though_o in_o his_o own_o person_n he_o can_v be_v say_v nor_o will_v perhaps_o to_o have_v suffer_v proper_o for_o catholic_a religion_n as_o you_o have_v do_v yet_o if_o we_o respect_v his_o near_a either_o in_o nature_n blood_n or_o affection_n and_o their_o number_n rank_n and_o quality_n that_o among_o they_o have_v suffer_v for_o the_o same_o cause_n he_o may_v be_v say_v to_o have_v suffer_v perchance_o far_o more_o than_o you_o for_o that_o more_o of_o his_o princely_a blood_n have_v be_v shed_v in_o england_n france_n and_o scotland_n about_o the_o quarrel_n of_o catholic_a religion_n than_o of_o all_o other_o christian_a prince_n join_v together_o 11._o and_o forasmuch_o as_o his_o majesty_n do_v vouchsafe_v of_o his_o princely_a gratitude_n to_o profess_v in_o one_o part_n of_o his_o instruction_n to_o his_o son_n the_o prince_n that_o in_o all_o his_o trouble_n straits_n and_o danger_n he_o have_v find_v none_o so_o sure_a and_o confident_a
this_o principle_n that_o every_o whole_a be_v great_a than_o its_o part_n or_o that_o man_n be_v a_o reasonable_a creature_n or_o like_o evident_a thing_n and_o then_o be_v our_o understanding_n force_v to_o yield_v thereunto_o and_o consequent_o have_v the_o less_o merit_n by_o how_o much_o less_o freedom_n it_o leave_v to_o our_o will_n and_o affection_n to_o give_v our_o assent_n or_o no._n but_o yet_o this_o knowledge_n get_v by_o human_a reason_n do_v not_o so_o take_v away_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o other_o that_o proceed_v of_o free_a assent_n of_o faith_n but_o that_o both_o may_v stand_v together_o in_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_a man_n about_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_a thing_n to_o wit_n faith_n and_o demonstration_n as_o distinct_a light_n get_v by_o different_a and_o distinct_a mean_n the_o one_o by_o revelation_n from_o god_n the_o other_o by_o demonstration_n of_o reason_n inconvenience_n for_o that_o otherwise_o this_o great_a inconvenience_n say_v the_o author_n that_o hold_v this_o opinion_n will_v follow_v that_o learned_a man_n shall_v be_v in_o far_o worse_a case_n for_o their_o merit_n in_o faith_n than_o the_o ignorant_a for_o that_o whensoever_o the_o say_v learned_a man_n do_v come_v by_o mean_n of_o their_o study_n to_o see_v clear_o by_o reason_n the_o truth_n of_o any_o conclusion_n of_o divinity_n or_o article_n of_o belief_n which_o simple_o before_o they_o do_v believe_v only_o as_o reveal_v from_o god_n which_o thing_n may_v very_o well_o happen_v and_o often_o do_v to_o learned_a man_n that_o then_o they_o shall_v lose_v their_o former_a faith_n or_o at_o leastwise_o the_o merit_n thereof_o if_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o faith_n and_o science_n may_v in_o no_o case_n stand_v together_o 36._o but_o to_o leave_v this_o to_o be_v dispute_v in_o school_n and_o to_o return_v to_o our_o purpose_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o some_o point_n belong_v to_o christian_a faith_n may_v plain_o and_o absolute_o be_v demonstrate_v and_o prove_v by_o human_a reason_n &_o science_n as_o those_o which_o i_o have_v here_o touch_v of_o one_o god_n his_o omnipotency_n providence_n and_o the_o like_a some_o other_o there_o be_v supposition_n which_o though_o they_o can_v be_v altogether_o so_o absolute_o convince_v by_o demonstration_n yet_o may_v they_o in_o part_n by_o way_n of_o supposition_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o suppose_v some_o one_o or_o two_o point_n belong_v thereunto_o which_o the_o adversary_n will_v either_o grant_v or_o can_v deny_v as_o for_o example_n suppose_v there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o that_o he_o have_v appoint_v any_o religion_n to_o mankind_n and_o that_o the_o prophet_n and_o prophecy_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v it_o be_v not_o hard_a to_o prove_v and_o demonstrate_v the_o verity_n of_o christian_a religion_n against_o either_o jew_n or_o gentile_n and_o the_o like_a be_v it_o in_o this_o matter_n here_o treat_v by_o i_o in_o this_o book_n against_o j._n fox_n and_o his_o fellow_n about_o the_o beginning_n plant_v grow_v and_o continuance_n of_o catholic_a religion_n for_o if_o you_o suppose_v only_o that_o christ_n be_v god_n and_o that_o he_o have_v appoint_v any_o religion_n at_o all_o and_o that_o the_o first_o religion_n and_o church_n institute_v by_o he_o be_v true_a and_o true_o mean_v by_o he_o and_o that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o perform_v his_o promise_n make_v to_o the_o first_o christian_n for_o the_o preservation_n and_o perpetuity_n thereof_o this_o i_o say_v be_v grant_v what_o i_o infer_v in_o this_o treatise_n follow_v by_o necessary_a consequence_n of_o moral_a demonstration_n as_o you_o will_v find_v in_o the_o perusal_n point_n 37._o these_o four_o point_n than_o i_o think_v good_a gentle_a reader_n to_o touch_v brief_o in_o this_o preface_n mean_v to_o make_v four_o several_a inference_n out_o of_o the_o same_o not_o unprofitable_a in_o my_o opinion_n to_o the_o purpose_n we_o have_v in_o hand_n for_o out_o of_o the_o first_o point_n concern_v the_o height_n and_o sublimity_n of_o matter_n of_o our_o faith_n above_o the_o capacity_n of_o man_n reason_n i_o make_v this_o inference_n that_o every_o one_o ought_v to_o come_v to_o treat_v and_o talk_v of_o such_o thing_n as_o belong_v to_o faith_n and_o belief_n with_o great_a reverence_n respect_n modesty_n and_o submission_n of_o mind_n not_o condemn_v that_o which_o his_o sense_n or_o reason_n reach_v not_o unto_o nor_o make_v the_o depth_n of_o his_o own_o capacity_n the_o rule_n and_o measure_n of_o his_o belief_n a_o thing_n note_v in_o the_o sect_n of_o manichee_n by_o s._n austin_n who_o write_v 1._o that_o for_o this_o cause_n principal_o he_o be_v nine_o year_n of_o their_o company_n for_o that_o they_o tell_v he_o still_o he_o be_v a_o young_a man_n desirous_a of_o knowledge_n that_o catholic_n do_v superstitious_o require_v faith_n before_o reason_n and_o that_o they_o the_o manichee_n forsooth_o do_v teach_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o shall_v clear_o be_v discuss_v by_o force_n of_o good_a argument_n and_o reason_n before_o it_o be_v believe_v etc._n etc._n upon_o which_o occasion_n also_o the_o say_a father_n write_v that_o excellent_a book_n beforementioned_a de_fw-fr utilitate_fw-la credendi_fw-la write_v of_o the_o great_a utility_n and_o infinite_a commodity_n which_o catholic_n christian_a people_n have_v in_o believe_v simple_o by_o tradition_n of_o their_o ancestor_n that_o faith_n which_o be_v establish_v in_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n though_o their_o own_o reason_n arrive_v not_o to_o penetrate_v the_o same_o for_o whosoever_o open_v once_o his_o ear_n especial_o the_o unlearned_a sort_n to_o hearken_v to_o human_a reason_n against_o the_o mystery_n of_o their_o faith_n he_o be_v in_o danger_n present_o either_o to_o lose_v his_o faith_n or_o at_o leastwise_o the_o merit_n thereof_o together_o with_o the_o peace_n comfort_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o his_o mind_n and_o thereby_o open_v a_o wide_a gap_n to_o the_o devil_n and_o all_o his_o instrument_n as_o well_o infidel_n as_o heretic_n to_o enter_v in_o and_o trouble_v the_o house_n of_o his_o conscience_n 38._o and_o as_o for_o heretic_n it_o have_v be_v a_o old_a practice_n to_o trouble_v or_o draw_v man_n from_o catholic_a religion_n or_o make_v they_o stagger_v by_o this_o mean_n of_o pretend_v human_a reason_n against_o belief_n as_o we_o have_v show_v by_o example_n of_o the_o manichee_n who_o take_v this_o trick_n from_o the_o old_a heathen_a philosopher_n who_o s._n hierom_n for_o this_o cause_n principal_o call_v ruffinum_fw-la the_o patriarch_n of_o heretic_n the_o arian_n also_o deceive_v many_o by_o the_o trick_n of_o human_a reason_n draw_v out_o their_o napkin_n as_o theodoretus_n say_v and_o ask_v the_o common_a people_n whether_o three_o corner_n thereof_o can_v be_v one_o or_o no_o and_o then_o infer_v deceitful_o thereupon_o say_v no_o more_o can_v three_o person_n be_v one_o god._n the_o sadducee_n found_v their_o heresy_n against_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n upon_o the_o contrariety_n it_o seem_v to_o have_v with_o human_a reason_n which_o prevail_v afterward_o with_o divers_a sort_n of_o heretic_n faith._n that_o have_v infinite_a follower_n as_o simon_n magus_n basilides_n hymenaeus_n philetus_n valentinus_n martion_n appelles_n the_o ophites_n cerdonists_n cainites_n albigenses_n and_o other_o and_o now_o in_o our_o day_n with_o zwinglians_n calvinist_n anabaptist_n trinitarian_n family_n of_o love_n brownist_n and_o divers_a other_o sect_n who_o do_v nothing_o but_o rave_v and_o blaspheme_v against_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n upon_o the_o same_o ground_n that_o it_o seem_v contrary_a to_o sense_n and_o human_a reason_n and_o final_o this_o be_v a_o way_n to_o all_o misbelief_n atheism_n and_o infidelity_n etc._n etc._n 39_o out_o of_o the_o second_o point_n concern_v argument_n of_o credibility_n for_o our_o belief_n i_o infer_v religion_n that_o see_v god_n have_v leave_v we_o such_o store_n and_o variety_n of_o argument_n for_o our_o comfort_n and_o consolation_n in_o that_o we_o believe_v every_o man_n ought_v to_o be_v diligent_a and_o careful_a to_o seek_v out_o and_o use_v they_o and_o not_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v overbear_v by_o deceitful_a quarrel_a people_n in_o a_o suit_n of_o so_o great_a importance_n without_o look_v upon_o his_o write_n and_o evidence_n that_o he_o have_v for_o the_o same_o for_o how_o great_o will_v we_o condemn_v the_o sloth_n and_o negligence_n of_o a_o man_n who_o descend_v for_o many_o age_n as_o lawful_a heir_n from_o a_o most_o ancient_a and_o noble_a house_n of_o great_a riches_n and_o possession_n and_o see_v false_a pretender_n to_o make_v claim_n thereunto_o and_o by_o slight_a and_o intrusion_n to_o put_v both_o he_o and_o his_o posterity_n from_o the_o same_o how_o much_o i_o say_v shall_v we_o condemn_v he_o if_o have_v whole_a chest_n full_a of_o
write_n for_o his_o defence_n he_o shall_v never_o so_o much_o as_o look_v they_o over_o or_o take_v a_o view_n of_o they_o but_o shall_v suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v cast_v and_o overthrow_v in_o the_o whole_a suit_n without_o plead_v at_o all_o for_o himself_o or_o his_o interest_n which_o be_v the_o very_a case_n of_o many_o negligent_a christian_n in_o our_o day_n who_o see_v so_o many_o assault_n to_o be_v make_v by_o different_a sectary_n against_o the_o old_a possession_n of_o cath._n religion_n which_o be_v their_o ancestor_n inheritance_n to_o salvation_n and_o must_v be_v they_o if_o ever_o they_o be_v save_v do_v yield_v so_o dastardly_a in_o this_o conflict_n and_o injury_n offer_v they_o as_o they_o never_o so_o much_o as_o examine_v what_o proof_n or_o evidence_n they_o have_v or_o may_v have_v for_o their_o defence_n a_o negligence_n no_o doubt_n inexcusable_a and_o worthy_a of_o infinite_a rebuke_n and_o confusion_n affection_n 40._o out_o of_o the_o three_o point_n concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o pious_a affection_n in_o he_o that_o must_v profit_v by_o these_o argument_n of_o credibility_n i_o do_v infer_v how_o high_o it_o do_v import_v every_o man_n that_o mean_v serious_o to_o treat_v of_o his_o salvation_n in_o this_o behalf_n to_o dispossess_v himself_o of_o his_o passion_n and_o sinister_a affection_n against_o the_o truth_n at_o leastwise_o while_o he_o treat_v this_o great_a affair_n and_o that_o he_o place_v himself_o in_o such_o a_o indifferency_n equanimity_n and_o serenity_n of_o mind_n as_o he_o may_v be_v able_a to_o discern_v and_o look_v upon_o the_o truth_n with_o a_o unpassionate_a eye_n if_o she_o chance_v to_o appear_v unto_o he_o saviour_n 41._o the_o say_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o place_n before-alleged_n of_o s._n john_n gospel_n to_o such_o as_o be_v ambitious_a and_o entangle_v with_o the_o wealth_n and_o honour_n of_o this_o world_n and_o thereby_o let_v to_o believe_v the_o truth_n be_v terrible_a and_o dreadful_a for_o have_v demand_v how_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o they_o to_o believe_v and_o thereby_o come_v to_o salvation_n that_o be_v so_o entangle_v and_o evil-affected_n in_o mind_n 5._o he_o add_v present_o nolite_fw-la putare_fw-la quia_fw-la ego_fw-la accusaturus_fw-la sim_fw-la vos_fw-la apud_fw-la patrem_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la accusat_fw-la vos_fw-la do_v not_o you_o think_v that_o i_o shall_v have_v need_n to_o accuse_v you_o to_o my_o father_n for_o these_o corrupt_a affection_n of_o you_o rise_v of_o ambition_n for_o there_o want_v not_o one_o to_o accuse_v you_o whereby_o christ_n insinuate_v among_o other_o thing_n that_o himself_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n be_v not_o to_o be_v accuser_n but_o judge_n and_o that_o the_o condemnation_n of_o these_o man_n be_v to_o be_v most_o grievous_a who_o for_o ambition_n honour_n wealth_n dignity_n and_o promotion_n have_v neither_o time_n nor_o will_n to_o attend_v to_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o true_a religion_n whereby_o only_o eternal_a salvation_n may_v be_v achieve_v which_o be_v a_o point_n great_o to_o be_v consider_v and_o bear_v in_o mind_n especial_o by_o such_o who_o be_v in_o the_o same_o or_o like_a case_n with_o those_o man_n of_o jewry_n to_o who_o christ_n our_o saviour_n use_v that_o dreadful_a speech_n reason_n 42._o out_o of_o the_o four_o and_o last_o point_n be_v infer_v that_o consider_v all_o the_o premise_n and_o that_o this_o matter_n of_o true_a religion_n be_v of_o so_o great_a moment_n as_o have_v be_v show_v and_o that_o in_o this_o treatise_n so_o short_a and_o clear_v a_o way_n be_v take_v for_o discussion_n thereof_o as_o by_o only_o join_v issue_n about_o the_o plant_v continuance_n succession_n and_o descent_n of_o christian_a religion_n in_o england_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n unto_o we_o the_o whole_a controversy_n between_o we_o and_o the_o protestant_n may_v full_o be_v clear_v and_o that_o with_o such_o evidence_n of_o reason_n and_o necessary_a consequence_n as_o suppose_v only_o that_o ghrist_n be_v christ_n and_o his_o promise_n true_a all_o the_o rest_n do_v follow_v by_o most_o certain_a sequel_n of_o argument_n and_o moral_a demonstration_n all_o this_o i_o say_v be_v so_o it_o may_v encourage_v and_o animate_v the_o studious_a reader_n to_o run_v over_o this_o short_a treatise_n which_o if_o he_o do_v with_o that_o indifferency_n and_o attention_n which_o in_o the_o second_o and_o three_o point_n of_o this_o discourse_n have_v be_v touch_v i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o read_v many_o other_o book_n for_o resolve_v himself_o either_o about_o the_o ground_a certain_a truth_n of_o catholic_a religion_n or_o the_o vanity_n inanity_n inconstancy_n lightness_n and_o folly_n of_o all_o sect_n and_o heresy_n that_o ever_o have_v or_o shall_v arise_v up_o against_o the_o same_o and_o with_o this_o good_a reader_n i_o leave_v thou_o to_o the_o holy_a protection_n and_o benediction_n of_o almighty_a god_n and_o to_o his_o merciful_a direction_n of_o thou_o in_o so_o weighty_a a_o affair_n this_o vigil_n of_o the_o nativity_n of_o our_o saviour_n 1602._o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o present_a treatise_n concern_v three_o conversion_n of_o england_n to_o the_o christian_a catholic_n roman_a religion_n the_o argument_n the_o purpose_n of_o this_o first_o part_n gentle_a reader_n be_v to_o declare_v by_o evident_a demonstration_n both_o of_o history_n reason_n antiquity_n and_o succession_n of_o time_n and_o by_o confession_n and_o other_o testimony_n of_o the_o adversary_n themselves_o that_o this_o our_o isle_n of_o england_n and_o people_n thereof_o the_o britan_n saxon_n and_o english_a have_v at_o three_o several_a time_n receive_v christian_a faith_n from_o rome_n and_o by_o romish_a preacher_n first_o under_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o first_o age_n after_o christ_n and_o then_o under_o pope_n eleutherius_fw-la in_o the_o second_o age_n and_o three_o under_o pope_n gregory_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o six_o age_n and_o that_o this_o faith_n and_o religion_n be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o roman_a catholic_a faith_n general_o receive_v over_o all_o christendom_n in_o those_o day_n and_o that_o it_o be_v one_o and_o the_o selfsame_a faith_n at_o all_o these_o three_o time_n and_o that_o the_o same_o be_v continue_v and_o profess_v afterward_o in_o england_n public_o for_o almost_o 1400_o year_n together_o to_o wit_n from_o the_o apostle_n day_n unto_o the_o reign_n of_o king_n henry_n viii_o under_o divers_a nation_n state_n government_n and_o variety_n of_o time_n by_o britan_n saxon_n dane_n norman_n and_o english_a and_o that_o the_o selfsame_a faith_n continue_v at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o christian_n catholic_n world_n abroad_o without_o change_n or_o alteration_n of_o any_o one_o substantial_a article_n or_o point_v of_o belief_n and_o that_o all_o cavil_n and_o calumniation_n of_o heretic_n and_o sectary_n in_o this_o behalf_n be_v vain_a and_o foolish_a and_o most_o manifest_o here_o confute_v and_o final_o a_o most_o clear_a easy_a evident_a and_o infallible_a deduction_n visible_a to_o the_o eye_n and_o understanding_n of_o every_o mean_a intelligent_a reader_n be_v set_v down_o and_o bring_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n without_o interruption_n from_o the_o first_o conversion_n of_o our_o realm_n unto_o this_o day_n and_o this_o so_o perspicuous_o as_o no_o man_n that_o will_v not_o wilful_o shut_v his_o eye_n but_o can_v see_v and_o behold_v the_o same_o as_o by_o the_o chapter_n follow_v god_n will_v more_o particular_o shall_v appear_v chap._n i._n whether_o england_n and_o englishman_n have_v particular_a obligation_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n above_o other_o nation_n and_o of_o the_o first_o conversion_n of_o britan_n to_o christian_a religion_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n after_o a_o certain_a narration_n make_v by_o i_o in_o my_o answer_n to_o sir_n francis_n hastings_n encounter_n about_o the_o seven_o encounter_n between_o he_o and_o n._n d._n wherein_o i_o declare_v what_o reverend_a respect_n other_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n have_v ever_o bear_v to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o bishop_n thereof_o until_o this_o miserable_a age_n of_o heretical_a spirit_n who_o ridiculous_o do_v hold_v the_o same_o to_o be_v antichrist_n i_o do_v infer_v the_o conclusion_n and_o comparison_n follow_v about_o the_o particular_a obligation_n of_o englishman_n towards_o the_o same_o see_v and_o bishop_n above_o many_o other_o kingdom_n say_v in_o my_o ward-word_n thus_o 103._o 2._o and_o if_o all_o christian_a nation_n have_v and_o aught_o to_o bear_v such_o reverence_n and_o respect_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n rome_n then_o much_o more_o out_o little_a island_n of_o england_n as_o this_o man_n call_v it_o for_o that_o it_o have_v receive_v more_o singular_a benefit_n from_o thence_o than_o any_o one_o nation_n in_o the_o world_n beside_o have_v be_v twice_o convert_v from_o
where_o have_v declare_v the_o extreme_a calamity_n come_v upon_o his_o countryman_n by_o that_o war_n and_o victory_n of_o the_o roman_n against_o they_o under_o claudius_n add_v present_o these_o word_n interea_fw-la glaciali_fw-la frigore_fw-la rigenti_fw-la insulae_fw-la etc._n etc._n in_o the_o mean_a space_n while_o these_o war_n last_v there_o appear_v and_o impart_v itself_o to_o this_o cold_a island_n remove_v further_o off_o from_o the_o visible_a sun_n than_o other_o country_n that_o true_a and_o invisible_a sun_n which_o in_o the_o time_n of_o tiberius_n caesar_n have_v show_v itself_o to_o the_o whole_a world_n i_o mean_v christ_n vouchsafe_v to_o impart_v his_o precept_n etc._n etc._n 14._o this_o be_v the_o sum_n and_o true_a sense_n of_o his_o sentence_n though_o the_o word_n be_v somewhat_o intricate_a and_o his_o stile_n obscure_a which_o sir_n francis_n understanding_n not_o cit_v this_o place_n of_o gildas_n as_o before_o you_o have_v hear_v to_o prove_v that_o britanny_n receive_v the_o gospel_n under_o tiberius_n caesar_n which_o he_o say_v not_o nor_o be_v not_o likely_a francis._n as_o before_o have_v be_v declare_v both_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o small_a time_n which_o tiberius_n live_v after_o the_o apostle_n begin_v to_o preach_v as_o also_o for_o that_o in_o those_o day_n there_o be_v no_o war_n in_o britanny_n whereof_o gildas_n speak_v immediate_o before_o 15._o and_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o time_n and_o occasion_n whereby_o christian_a religion_n begin_v first_o in_o brittany_n within_o the_o first_o fifty_o year_n after_o christ_n ascension_n whereto_o also_o we_o may_v add_v the_o testimony_n of_o nicephorus_n catalogue_n and_o before_o he_o of_o theodoretus_n and_o sophronius_n ancient_a writer_n who_o do_v testify_v that_o brittaniae_fw-la insulae_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o britain_n island_n fall_v in_o division_n among_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o first_o partition_n which_o they_o make_v of_o the_o world._n and_o it_o be_v most_o like_a that_o st._n peter_n be_v come_v to_o rome_n to_o teach_v and_o convert_v the_o western-part_n of_o the_o world_n as_o italy_n spain_n and_o france_n by_o name_n these_o island_n also_o receive_v the_o same_o benefit_n from_o he_o and_o so_o say_v our_o author_n who_o afterward_o i_o shall_v allege_v for_o his_o be_v in_o britanny_n 16._o and_o this_o be_v another_o point_n of_o obligation_n betwixt_o england_n and_o rome_n if_o sir_n francis_n can_v be_v content_a to_o hear_v it_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o first_o bishop_n of_o rome_n go_v in_o person_n to_o convert_v our_o country_n as_o afterward_o we_o shall_v hear_v grave_a author_n affirm_v to_o who_o i_o remit_v i_o though_o who_o indeed_o be_v the_o very_a first_o teacher_n in_o britanny_n and_o preacher_n in_o particular_a or_o helper_n thereunto_o be_v not_o so_o certain_a our_o ancient_a historiographer_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o variety_n of_o time_n and_o our_o country_n calamity_n have_v leave_v no_o clear_a testimony_n thereof_o true_a it_o be_v that_o our_o late_a writer_n of_o the_o english_a nation_n 162._o namely_o holinsh_v and_o cambden_n do_v affirm_v that_o one_o claudia_n ruffina_n a_o noble_a british_a lady_n live_v then_o in_o rome_n and_o be_v the_o wife_n as_o they_o say_v of_o one_o pudens_n a_o roman_a senator_n and_o mother_n of_o the_o two_o famous_a christian_a virgin_n praxedes_o and_o pudentiana_n do_v send_v divers_a book_n and_o message_n unto_o her_o friend_n in_o britanny_n and_o thereby_o help_v much_o to_o their_o conversion_n and_o this_o may_v appear_v say_v they_o as_o well_o by_o the_o salutation_n send_v from_o she_o by_o st._n paul_n pen_n to_o timothy_n 4._o when_o he_o say_v eubulus_n pudens_n linus_n claudia_n and_o all_o the_o brethren_n do_v salute_v you_o as_o also_o for_o that_o she_o be_v the_o first_o hostess_n or_o harbourer_n of_o st._n peter_n and_o st._n paul_n at_o their_o come_n to_o rome_n lady_n it_o may_v be_v conjecture_v that_o she_o be_v one_o of_o the_o first_o christian_n of_o the_o city_n whereof_o it_o may_v be_v infer_v that_o if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o she_o send_v those_o first_o message_n book_n or_o messenger_n of_o christian_a knowledge_n into_o her_o country_n she_o be_v also_o the_o first_o or_o one_o of_o the_o first_o helper_n to_o that_o conversion_n 17._o but_o now_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o mater_fw-la be_v not_o so_o strong_a as_o i_o can_v wish_v or_o desire_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o our_o country_n but_o let_v we_o hear_v they_o as_o they_o be_v first_o the_o proof_n that_o she_o be_v a_o britain_n be_v by_o certain_a verse_n of_o martial_a the_o poet_n write_v unto_o she_o in_o his_o epigram_n thus_o 35._o claudia_n caeruleis_fw-la cum_fw-la sit_fw-la ruffina_n britannis_fw-la edita_fw-la cur_n latiae_fw-la pectora_fw-la plebis_fw-la habet_fw-la whereas_o claudia_n ruffina_n be_v bear_v of_o the_o britan_n that_o paint_v themselves_o how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o she_o have_v gain_v so_o much_o the_o good_a will_n of_o the_o italian_a people_n and_o then_o he_o go_v forward_o to_o praise_v she_o also_o for_o her_o beauty_n exceed_v the_o beauty_n either_o of_o italian_n or_o grecian_n he_o commend_v she_o beside_o for_o three_o child_n which_o she_o have_v bear_v to_o her_o husband_n and_o these_o child_n our_o man_n will_v interpret_v to_o be_v the_o foresay_a two_o virgin_n praxedes_o and_o pudentiana_n together_o with_o novatus_n their_o brother_n all_o child_n of_o pudens_n the_o senator_n abovenamed_a 18._o but_o although_o i_o can_v wish_v much_o as_o i_o say_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o our_o nation_n that_o this_o thing_n be_v true_a especial_o her_o be_v the_o wife_n to_o pudens_n and_o mother_n of_o the_o foresay_a child_n that_o be_v all_o saint_n yet_o have_v i_o great_a argument_n to_o the_o contrary_a ruffina_n whereof_o the_o first_o be_v the_o silence_n of_o all_o antiquity_n in_o this_o behalf_n martial_a also_o be_v a_o heathen_a and_o enemy_n to_o christian_n will_v hardly_o have_v commend_v she_o so_o much_o and_o write_v epigram_n to_o she_o of_o her_o rare_a beauty_n if_o she_o have_v be_v a_o christian_n which_o be_v the_o most_o odious_a thing_n that_o may_v be_v in_o those_o day_n nor_o can_v she_o be_v so_o beautiful_a in_o his_o time_n live_v under_o vespasian_n and_o titus_n and_o die_v under_o trajan_n during_o who_o reign_n it_o appear_v in_o martial_a that_o these_o verse_n be_v write_v for_o so_o much_o as_o she_o must_v needs_o be_v very_o old_a in_o those_o day_n maii._fw-la see_v that_o pudens_n his_o house_n place_v in_o declivo_fw-la montis_fw-la scauri_n in_o the_o side_n of_o the_o hill_n call_v scaurus_n be_v the_o first_o by_o tradition_n of_o all_o antiquity_n that_o receive_v st._n peter_n and_o afterward_o st._n paul_n in_o rome_n and_o be_v at_o this_o day_n a_o church_n dedicate_v to_o his_o daughter_n st._n pudentiana_n and_o from_o the_o arrival_n of_o st._n peter_n to_o rome_n until_o the_o time_n of_o trajan_n be_v almost_o sixty_o year_n so_o as_o if_o she_o be_v wife_n of_o pudens_n and_o mother_n of_o those_o child_n when_o st._n peter_n come_v to_o rome_n she_o must_v needs_o be_v very_o age_a when_o martial_a write_v those_o verse_n of_o her_o beauty_n beside_o this_o junii_fw-la our_o own_o bede_n ado_n archbishop_n of_o trever_n usuardus_n and_o other_o ancient_a author_n in_o their_o martyrology_n do_v assign_v another_o wife_n unto_o pudens_n the_o senator_n as_o mother_n to_o the_o foresay_a three_o child_n who_o name_n be_v sabinella_n so_o that_o though_o it_o be_v true_a that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o british_a lady_n name_v claudia_n ruffina_n in_o rome_n commend_v by_o martial_a under_o trajan_n and_o that_o st._n paul_n do_v commend_v another_o claudia_n and_o pudens_n for_o christian_a religion_n in_o his_o second_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n all_o which_o be_v sufficient_o prove_v yet_o that_o this_o claudia_n ruffina_n be_v the_o claudia_n mention_v by_o st._n paul_n or_o that_o the_o same_o ruffina_n be_v a_o christian_a or_o wife_n to_o pudens_n or_o mother_n of_o praxede_n and_o pudentiana_n which_o be_v the_o principal_a point_n whereof_o the_o matter_n depend_v this_o i_o say_v ruffina_n be_v not_o prove_v nor_o any_o part_n thereof_o but_o only_o huddle_v up_o by_o our_o late_a heretical_a writer_n under_o a_o show_n of_o other_o proof_n to_o wit_n that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o claudia_n that_o be_v of_o britanny_n and_o another_o by_o st._n paul_n name_v which_o be_v impertinent_a point_n to_o the_o principal_a that_o shall_v have_v be_v prove_v and_o hereby_o we_o see_v that_o heretic_n be_v but_o slight_a prover_n and_o very_o deceitful_a in_o all_o matter_n as_o well_o historical_a as_o doctrinal_a 19_o wherefore_o to_o let_v this_o pass_v and_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o first_o ecclesiastical_a teacher_n of_o christian_a religion_n in_o england_n who_o through_o the_o great_a
roman_a in_o the_o next_o age_n after_o when_o st._n gregory_n send_v st._n augustin_n to_o convert_v the_o english_a or_o that_o the_o roman_a religion_n bring_v in_o by_o st._n augustin_n shall_v be_v different_a from_o the_o british_a except_o only_o in_o certain_a rite_n or_o relic_n of_o pelagianism_n which_o yet_o be_v not_o general_o receive_v of_o all_o as_o before_o have_v be_v declare_v reason_n five_o history_n 8._o the_o five_o argument_n stand_v upon_o some_o observation_n take_v out_o of_o history_n and_o other_o monument_n of_o antiquity_n whereby_o it_o may_v be_v gather_v more_o or_o less_o what_o point_v of_o religion_n among_o such_o as_o be_v now_o call_v in_o controversy_n by_o protestant_n be_v believe_v in_o those_o day_n by_o the_o ancient_a britan_n for_o albeit_o the_o story_n of_o that_o church_n before_o the_o come_n of_o st._n augustin_n be_v not_o so_o leave_v write_v by_o any_o authentical_a writer_n as_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v and_o as_o other_o country_n have_v and_o namely_o we_o by_o st._n bede_n and_o this_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o manifold_a war_n great_a misery_n and_o continual_a calamity_n fall_v upon_o the_o british_a nation_n for_o 200_o year_n together_o before_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o english_a whereby_o neither_o the_o orderly_a succession_n of_o their_o bishop_n neither_o their_o meeting_n in_o synod_n and_o council_n neither_o the_o observation_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n neither_o their_o communication_n with_o the_o church_n of_o other_o country_n and_o especial_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n can_v be_v so_o well_o perform_v or_o record_v yet_o of_o the_o small_a sparkle_n and_o relic_n that_o do_v remain_v it_o be_v not_o hard_a to_o guess_v beside_o the_o reason_n and_o consideration_n before-alledged_n what_o religion_n the_o britan_n be_v of_o and_o whether_o their_o faith_n agree_v more_o with_o the_o protestant_n of_o our_o day_n than_o with_o the_o religion_n of_o st._n augustin_n bring_v in_o from_o rome_n and_o continue_v by_o catholic_o unto_o this_o present_a deus_fw-la 9_o for_o first_o if_o we_o will_v hear_v external_a author_n st._n chrysostom_n testify_v against_o the_o gentile_n in_o his_o day_n that_o in_o britanny_n there_o be_v altari_fw-la a_o christi_fw-la dedicata_fw-la altar_n dedicate_v to_o christ_n which_o altar_n do_v infer_v sacrifice_n and_o sacrifice_n priesthood_n as_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr sacerdotio_fw-la he_o prove_v so_o as_o in_o st._n chrysostom_n age_n which_o be_v the_o very_a same_o wherein_o the_o saxon_n enter_v into_o britanny_n the_o britan_n religion_n be_v catholic_n according_a to_o st._n chrysostom_n agree_v as_o well_o with_o the_o western_a as_o eastern_a church_n whereof_o himself_o be_v for_o if_o they_o have_v be_v different_a or_o have_v follow_v any_o other_o religion_n than_o the_o common_a he_o will_v not_o so_o much_o have_v brag_v of_o they_o as_o against_o the_o gentile_n he_o do_v 10._o but_o let_v we_o return_v to_o british_a author_n themselves_o if_o we_o read_v over_o with_o attention_n the_o little_a treatise_n or_o epistle_n of_o gildas_n which_o he_o write_v of_o the_o destruction_n and_o conquest_n of_o his_o country_n he_o be_v the_o only_a author_n indeed_o of_o entire_a credit_n which_o we_o find_v extant_a of_o those_o ancient_a time_n we_o shall_v find_v sign_n and_o footstep_n enough_o what_o religion_n the_o britan_n be_v of_o though_o his_o purpose_n be_v not_o to_o write_v any_o ecclesiastical_a history_n he_o live_v a_o good_a while_n before_o the_o come_n of_o st._n augustin_n and_o in_o the_o second_o part_n of_o his_o say_a treatise_n reprehend_v grievous_o the_o most_o horrible_a sin_n of_o the_o britan_n for_o which_o these_o calamity_n of_o the_o pict_n scot_n and_o saxon_n come_v upon_o they_o and_o he_o begin_v his_o complaint_n first_o of_o their_o king_n and_o judge_n say_v reges_fw-la habet_fw-la britannia_fw-la sed_fw-la tyrannos_fw-la judices_fw-la habet_fw-la 26._o sed_fw-la impios_fw-la crebro_fw-la jurantes_fw-la sed_fw-la perjurante_n voventes_fw-la sed_fw-la continuò_fw-la propemodum_fw-la mentientes_fw-la britanny_n have_v king_n but_o they_o be_v become_v tyrant_n it_o have_v judge_n but_o they_o be_v impious_a swear_v often_o but_o forswear_v make_v vow_n but_o present_o almost_o break_v the_o same_o etc._n etc._n 11._o here_o we_o see_v that_o break_n of_o vow_n be_v hold_v for_o no_o small_a sin_n in_o those_o day_n altar_n but_o he_o go_v further_a talk_v of_o the_o say_a prince_n inter_fw-la altaria_fw-la jurando_fw-la demorante_n &_o haec_fw-la eadem_fw-la ac_fw-la si_fw-la lutulenta_fw-la paulò_fw-la pòst_fw-la saxa_fw-la despicientes_fw-la cujus_fw-la tam_fw-la nefandi_fw-la piaculi_fw-la non_fw-la ignarus_fw-la est_fw-la constantinus_n they_o run_v to_o the_o altar_n and_o swear_v when_o they_o be_v in_o necessity_n and_o a_o little_a after_o they_o despise_v the_o say_v altar_n again_o as_o if_o they_o be_v but_o dirty_a stone_n of_o which_o wicked_a sacrilege_n king_n constantine_n be_v not_o ignorant_a etc._n etc._n here_o you_o see_v altar_n make_v of_o stone_n in_o those_o day_n and_o prince_n accustom_v to_o swear_v by_o altar_n and_o to_o seek_v their_o refuge_n in_o peril_n or_o necessity_n by_o run_v to_o they_o and_o stay_v by_o they_o in_o sanctuary_n or_o when_o they_o will_v do_v any_o act_n with_o religious_a solemnity_n and_o that_o it_o be_v count_v a_o heinous_a sin_n to_o break_v promise_n make_v upon_o altar_n in_o those_o day_n which_o yet_o protestant_n make_v no_o scruple_n of_o 12._o but_o now_o what_o this_o oath_n of_o king_n constantine_n be_v whereof_o gildas_n speak_v and_o in_o what_o form_n it_o be_v make_v it_o appear_v in_o the_o next_o word_n after_o which_o among_o other_o be_v these_o ibid._n hoc_fw-la anno_fw-la post_fw-la horribile_fw-la juramenti_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la quo_fw-la se_fw-la devinxit_fw-la etc._n etc._n deo_fw-la primum_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la demum_fw-la choris_fw-la &_o genetrici_fw-la comitantibus_fw-la etc._n etc._n latera_fw-la regiorum_fw-la tenerrima_fw-la puerorum_fw-la vel_fw-la praecordia_fw-la crudeliter_fw-la inter_fw-la ipsa_fw-la ut_fw-la dixi_fw-la sacrosancta_fw-la altaria_fw-la nefando_fw-la ense_fw-mi hastaque_fw-la prodentibus_fw-la laceravit_fw-la ita_fw-la ut_fw-la sacrificii_fw-la coelestibus_fw-la sedem_fw-la &_o purpurea_fw-la pallia_fw-la coagulati_fw-la cruoris_fw-la attingerent_n etc._n etc._n even_o this_o year_n after_o a_o most_o dreadful_a oath_n whereby_o constantine_n bind_v himself_o etc._n etc._n first_o to_o god_n and_o then_o to_o the_o whole_a choir_n of_o saint_n and_o the_o mother_n of_o christ_n accompany_v the_o same_o etc._n etc._n he_o pierce_v with_o his_o wicked_a sword_n and_o spear_n the_o most_o tender_a side_n and_o heart_n of_o two_o young_a princely_a child_n and_o this_o so_o near_o to_o the_o holy_a altar_n as_o their_o purple_a cloak_n all_o besprinkle_v with_o blood_n do_v touch_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o heavenly_a sacrifice_n etc._n etc._n behold_v here_o a_o oath_n break_v which_o be_v make_v to_o god_n upon_o the_o holy_a altar_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o his_o mother_n and_o of_o all_o the_o saint_n of_o heaven_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o say_v two_o princely_a child_n commit_v to_o constantine_n and_o most_o cruel_o murder_v by_o he_o even_o at_o the_o side_n of_o the_o say_a altar_n so_o near_o that_o their_o purple_a cloak_n do_v touch_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o heavenly_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v the_o same_o phrase_n that_o other_o ancient_a father_n do_v use_v to_o describe_v holy_a altar_n call_v they_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o bless_a sacrifice_n or_o which_o be_v all_o one_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n quid_fw-la est_fw-la enim_fw-la altar_n 6._o say_v optatus_n nisi_fw-la sedes_fw-la corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la christi_fw-la what_o be_v a_o altar_n but_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n 13._o and_o now_o i_o will_v ask_v our_o man_n whether_o these_o speech_n of_o gildas_n do_v agree_v better_a to_o protestant_n religion_n or_o to_o we_o will_v any_o protestant_a speak_z or_o write_v thus_o but_o let_v we_o hear_v how_o he_o go_v forward_o against_o another_o britain_n prince_n of_o that_o time_n call_v aurelius_n among_o many_o other_o crime_n 122._o he_o object_v this_o propriâ_fw-la uxore_fw-la pulsâ_fw-la furciferam_fw-la germanam_fw-la ejus_fw-la perpetuam_fw-la deo_fw-la viduitatis_fw-la castimoniam_fw-la promittentem_fw-la suscipis_fw-la thou_o have_v drive_v away_o thy_o own_o wife_n take_v unto_o thou_o her_o wicked_a sister_n which_o have_v promise_v to_o god_n perpetual_a chastity_n of_o widowhood_n and_o then_o to_o another_o wicked_a prince_n monk._n maglocunus_fw-la he_o object_v that_o have_v make_v a_o vow_n to_o be_v a_o monk_n he_o return_v to_o the_o world_n again_o say_v coram_fw-la omnipotent_a deo_fw-la angelicis_fw-la vultibus_fw-la humanisque_fw-la perpetuò_fw-la monachus_fw-la vovisti_fw-la etc._n etc._n o_o quam_fw-la profusus_fw-la spei_fw-la coelestibus_fw-la foam_v desperatorum_fw-la cordibus_fw-la te_fw-la in_fw-la bonis_fw-la permanente_fw-la inardesceret_fw-la o_o qualia_fw-la
calixtus_n the_o second_o whereby_o appear_v that_o the_o britan_n be_v not_o only_a papist_n in_o those_o day_n before_o the_o come_n of_o st._n augustin_n but_o have_v papist_n god_n and_o saint_n also_o there_o yet_o this_o man_n may_v live_v according_a to_o bale_n to_o have_v see_v the_o time_n of_o st._n augustin_n entrance_n for_o that_o he_o say_v he_o flourish_v in_o the_o year_n 440._o and_o live_v in_o all_o 146_o year_n though_o gerrad_n cambrensis_fw-la polydore_n fine_a and_o other_o do_v make_v he_o somewhat_o more_o ancient_a 10._o and_o for_o that_o we_o have_v talk_v here_o of_o john_n bale_n and_o that_o the_o testimony_n take_v from_o enemy_n themselves_o be_v of_o great_a weight_n against_o themselves_o we_o shall_v in_o this_o place_n touch_v certain_a point_n brief_o of_o the_o chief_a preacher_n and_o pastor_n among_o the_o britan_n in_o those_o day_n to_o wit_n for_o the_o next_o two_o hundred_o year_n before_o the_o come_n of_o st._n augustin_n into_o england_n which_o preacher_n be_v mention_v protestant_n and_o much_o praise_v both_o by_o fox_n and_o bale_n as_o true_a teacher_n in_o those_o day_n whereof_o fox_n write_v thus_o in_o this_o age_n to_o wit_n after_o the_o peace_n restore_v to_o the_o church_n by_o constantine_n follow_v here_o in_o the_o land_n of_o britanny_n fastidius_n ninianus_n patricius_n bacchiarius_n dubritius_fw-la congellus_fw-la kentegernus_n helmotus_fw-la david_n daniel_n samson_n elnodugus_fw-la assaphus_n gildas_n henlanus_n elbodus_n dinothus_n samuel_n nivius_fw-la and_o a_o great_a sort_n more_o which_o govern_v the_o britain_n church_n by_o christian_a doctrine_n a_o long_a season_n albeit_o the_o civil_a governor_n for_o the_o time_n be_v dissolute_a and_o careless_a as_o gildas_n very_o sharp_o do_v lay_v to_o their_o charge_n and_o so_o at_o length_n be_v subdue_v by_o the_o saxon_n and_o all_o this_o while_n about_o the_o space_n of_o 400_o year_n to_o wit_n from_o the_o time_n of_o king_n lucius_n religion_n remain_v in_o britanny_n uncorrupt_a and_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n true_o preach_v until_o about_o the_o come_n of_o st._n augustin_n and_o his_o companion_n from_o rome_n etc._n etc._n 11._o here_o now_o you_o see_v the_o chief_a teacher_n of_o the_o british_a church_n nineteen_o in_o number_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 400_o year_n as_o fox_n avow_v set_v down_o in_o order_n and_o high_o praise_v by_o he_o but_o neither_o his_o order_n or_o argument_n be_v worth_a a_o rush_n fox_n for_o as_o for_o his_o order_n he_o begin_v with_o fastidius_n that_o live_v not_o two_o hundred_o year_n before_o st._n augustin_n come_n though_o he_o name_v four_o hundred_o and_o then_o he_o put_v some_o before_o that_o live_v long_o after_o the_o rest_n and_o sometime_o skip_v over_o 100_o year_n together_o from_o one_o to_o another_o as_o you_o shall_v see_v by_o the_o examen_fw-la and_o for_o his_o argument_n how_o many_o lie_v and_o error_n it_o contain_v shall_v easy_o appear_v by_o the_o sequel_n of_o this_o discourse_n for_o first_o concern_v two_o of_o the_o chief_a in_o this_o catalogue_n contain_v to_o wit_n dubritius_fw-la and_o david_n archbishop_n of_o the_o britan_n you_o have_v see_v before_o that_o they_o be_v roman_a catholic_o and_o canonize_v many_o age_n after_o their_o death_n by_o roman_a bishop_n which_o they_o will_v never_o have_v do_v if_o they_o have_v differ_v from_o they_o in_o any_o point_n of_o religion_n but_o now_o let_v we_o see_v of_o the_o rest_n for_o i_o see_v not_o what_o reason_n there_o be_v why_o fox_n shall_v so_o commend_v these_o two_o 12._o the_o first_o four_o be_v fastidius_n ninianus_n patricius_n and_o bacchiarius_n all_o which_o be_v find_v to_o have_v be_v catholic_a man_n and_o hold_v the_o common_a faith_n of_o rome_n in_o those_o day_n nor_o any_o of_o they_o ever_o favour_v any_o of_o these_o new_a doctrine_n bring_v in_o by_o our_o new_a gospeler_n 23._o trithemius_n make_v mention_n of_o fastidius_n who_o surname_n be_v priscus_n bishop_n of_o the_o britan_n a_o man_n of_o rare_a life_n and_o great_a learning_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o a_o singular_a preacher_n and_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o honorius_n and_o theodosius_n the_o emperor_n about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 420._o the_o same_o do_v write_v of_o he_o both_o honorius_n gennadius_n and_o bergomas_n and_o john_n bale_n concur_v with_o the_o rest_n add_v that_o he_o be_v archbishop_n of_o london_n and_o that_o among_o other_o his_o work_n he_o write_v one_o de_n viduitate_fw-la servanda_fw-la of_o keep_v widowhood_n without_o marryig_a again_o by_o which_o only_o work_v you_o may_v know_v that_o he_o be_v not_o of_o john_n bale_n religion_n what_o we_o have_v write_v also_o of_o the_o religion_n of_o st._n german_n and_o his_o fellow_n bishop_n that_o come_v into_o england_n may_v easy_o declare_v what_o religion_n this_o man_n be_v of_o who_o be_v then_o archbishop_n of_o london_n must_v needs_o be_v presume_v to_o have_v have_v a_o great_a part_n in_o their_o call_n in_o as_o also_o to_o have_v join_v with_o they_o against_o the_o pelagian_n which_o he_o will_v not_o have_v do_v if_o they_o have_v not_o be_v all_o of_o one_o religion_n and_o thus_o much_o of_o he_o ibid._n 13._o of_o st._n ninianus_n who_o convert_v the_o pict_n to_o christian_a religion_n st._n bede_n make_v most_o honourable_a mention_n in_o the_o three_o book_n of_o his_o ecclesiastical_a history_n and_o the_o roman_a martyrologe_n do_v cite_v he_o for_o a_o saint_n upon_o the_o sixteen_o day_n of_o september_n which_o will_v never_o have_v be_v permit_v if_o he_o have_v be_v in_o any_o one_o thing_n different_a from_o the_o roman_a faith._n nay_o john_n bale_n write_v of_o he_o thus_o ninianus_n bernitius_fw-la ex_fw-la regio_fw-la britannorum_fw-la sanguine_fw-la procreatus_fw-la italiam_fw-la adhuc_fw-la adolescens_fw-la petiit_fw-la romae_fw-la apud_fw-la divini_fw-la verbi_fw-la ministros_fw-la mysteria_fw-la veritatis_fw-la edoctus_fw-la ad_fw-la plenum_fw-la celer_fw-la in_o patriam_fw-la remigrabat_fw-la etc._n etc._n miraculis_fw-la ac_fw-la sanctitate_fw-la clarissimus_fw-la obiit_fw-la anno_fw-la 432._o st._n ninian_n bernitius_fw-la be_v descend_v of_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o king_n be_v of_o britanny_n go_v in_o his_o youth_n into_o italy_n and_o be_v full_o teach_v the_o mystery_n of_o god_n word_n in_o rome_n he_o return_v swift_o to_o his_o country_n again_o where_o he_o flourish_v exceed_o in_o miracle_n and_o sanctity_n of_o life_n and_o after_o die_v in_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 432._o mark_v here_o that_o prince_n child_n become_v priest_n in_o those_o day_n and_o go_v to_o rome_n to_o learn_v divinity_n and_o that_o this_o man_n have_v do_v so_o and_o bring_v back_o into_o britanny_n the_o christian_a doctrine_n of_o rome_n wrought_v miracle_n thereby_o ergo_fw-la he_o be_v no_o protestant_n so_o that_o here_o bale_n testify_v against_o himself_o palladius_n 14._o there_o follow_v of_o patricius_n in_o john_n fox_n but_o indeed_o he_o shall_v have_v put_v palladius_n before_o patricius_n for_o so_o do_v bale_n and_o he_o have_v reason_n for_o that_o he_o be_v a_o famous_a teacher_n in_o britanny_n and_o send_v from_o rome_n by_o pope_n caelestinus_n before_o patricius_n as_o bale_n do_v note_n say_v first_o of_o palladius_n hic_fw-la à_fw-la caelestino_n romanorum_fw-la pontifice_fw-la antistes_fw-la mittebatur_fw-la etc._n etc._n this_o man_n be_v send_v bishop_n from_o caelestinus_n pope_n of_o rome_n 430._o to_o drive_v out_o of_o britanny_n the_o pelagian_a heresy_n which_o at_o that_o time_n have_v infect_v the_o great_a part_n thereof_o and_o to_o reduce_v the_o scot_n to_o true_a piety_n etc._n etc._n he_o flourish_v about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 431._o etc._n etc._n 30._o so_o say_v he_o and_o the_o same_o be_v confirm_v by_o that_o which_o prosper_n a_o far_o better_a author_n than_o bale_n write_v in_o his_o chronicle_n where_o he_o say_v that_o palladius_n be_v send_v by_o caelestinus_n pope_n in_o the_o year_n 432_o into_o britanny_n but_o especial_o to_o the_o scot_n as_o testify_v also_o st._n bede_n in_o his_o story_n so_o as_o in_o this_o time_n also_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n have_v supreme_a care_n in_o spiritual_a affair_n both_o among_o the_o britan_n and_o scot_n see_v he_o appoint_v they_o bishop_n from_o rome_n 15._o and_o this_o be_v confirm_v also_o by_o the_o other_o example_n of_o patricius_n patricius_n who_o as_o john_n bale_n say_v be_v surname_v mangonius_fw-la and_o be_v bear_v in_o britanny_n of_o the_o family_n of_o senator_n and_o thereby_o call_v patricius_n but_o yet_o of_o kindred_n by_o his_o mother_n to_o st._n martin_n bishop_n of_o tours_n study_v divinity_n in_o rome_n and_o thence_o send_v by_o caelestinus_n the_o pope_n to_o preach_v to_o the_o irishman_n 25._o istum_fw-la say_v he_o ad_fw-la scotos_o &_o hibernos_fw-la post_fw-la palladium_n graecum_fw-la misit_fw-la ut_fw-la eos_fw-la à_fw-la pelagianorum_n tueretur_fw-la
what_o they_o say_v or_o avouch_v so_o they_o say_v somewhat_o against_o rome_n and_o those_o that_o any_o way_n favour_v the_o same_o wherein_o passion_n do_v so_o great_o blind_v they_o as_o they_o can_v discern_v when_o they_o allege_v matter_n plain_o against_o themselves_o as_o you_o have_v see_v in_o the_o former_a enumeration_n of_o british_a teacher_n pastor_n and_o prelate_n who_o they_o will_v have_v we_o think_v to_o have_v be_v of_o a_o different_a religion_n from_o that_o of_o rome_n whereas_o their_o own_o word_n testimony_n condition_n and_o state_n of_o life_n do_v testify_v the_o contrary_n and_o so_o i_o leave_v these_o man_n to_o their_o folly_n and_o impudence_n in_o this_o behalf_n chap._n xi_o the_o deduction_n of_o the_o aforesaid_a catholic_a roman_n religion_n plant_v in_o england_n by_o st._n augustin_n from_o his_o time_n to_o our_o day_n and_o that_o from_o king_n ethelbert_n who_o first_o receive_v the_o same_o unto_o king_n henry_n viii_o there_o be_v never_o any_o public_a interruption_n of_o the_o say_a religion_n in_o our_o land_n have_v show_v before_o how_o that_o the_o roman_n catholic_n faith_n be_v first_o preach_v in_o our_o island_n under_o the_o apostle_n and_o then_o again_o in_o the_o next_o age_n under_o pope_n eleutherius_fw-la and_o three_o four_o age_n after_o that_o again_o under_o pope_n gregory_n and_o that_o all_o this_o be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_a religion_n continue_v renew_v and_o revive_v in_o divers_a time_n under_o divers_a state_n and_o people_n of_o the_o realm_n there_o may_v seem_v to_o remain_v only_o now_o two_o other_o point_v considerable_a in_o this_o affair_n the_o first_o whether_o this_o religion_n bring_v in_o by_o st._n augustin_n to_o england_n be_v hold_v at_o that_o day_n for_o the_o only_a true_a religion_n of_o christendom_n and_o so_o accept_v by_o all_o the_o world_n the_o other_o whether_o that_o religion_n then_o plant_v have_v come_v down_o and_o be_v continue_v in_o england_n ever_o since_o by_o continual_a succession_n until_o the_o first_o public_a alteration_n make_v thereof_o in_o our_o day_n for_o if_o this_o be_v so_o then_o be_v the_o demonstration_n easy_a to_o be_v make_v even_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n to_o we_o 2._o and_o for_o the_o first_o though_o we_o have_v handle_v the_o same_o somewhat_o before_o catholic_n yet_o brief_o we_o will_v add_v now_o that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o doubt_n at_o all_o in_o this_o matter_n with_o man_n of_o reason_n and_o judgement_n but_o that_o st._n augustin_n and_o his_o fellow_n bring_v in_o with_o they_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o religion_n as_o well_o touch_v article_n of_o belief_n as_o ceremony_n and_o ecclesiastical_a custom_n which_o be_v at_o that_o time_n in_o use_n at_o rome_n whence_o they_o come_v and_o in_o other_o catholic_a country_n by_o which_o they_o pass_v namely_o italy_n france_n and_o flanders_n aug._n from_o which_o country_n pope_n gregory_n himself_o exhort_v they_o by_o his_o letter_n to_o take_v such_o good_a ecclesiastical_a use_v as_o they_o shall_v see_v most_o agreeable_a to_o piety_n edification_n and_o devotion_n which_o be_v a_o sign_n that_o all_o those_o country_n agree_v full_o in_o faith_n and_o belief_n with_o rome_n at_o that_o day_n and_o be_v perfect_o catholic_n though_o in_o some_o external_a ceremony_n belong_v to_o devotion_n there_o may_v be_v difference_n and_o forasmuch_o as_o the_o french_a bishop_n st._n german_n st._n lupus_n and_o st._n severus_n etc._n 150_o year_n as_o have_v be_v say_v before_o the_o entrance_n of_o st._n augustin_n plant_v in_o britanny_n the_o french_a catholic_a faith_n against_o the_o pelagian_n and_o these_o man_n come_v from_o rome_n find_v no_o fault_n therewith_o most_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o all_o be_v one_o and_o final_o if_o we_o do_v consider_v the_o work_n write_n and_o action_n of_o pope_n gregory_n relate_v by_o we_o before_o partly_o out_o of_o st._n isidore_n live_v at_o that_o time_n in_o spain_n partly_o out_o of_o his_o own_o epistle_n yet_o extant_a write_v to_o the_o chief_a bishop_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o their_o answer_n to_o he_o again_o together_o with_o their_o agreement_n in_o faith_n and_o religion_n if_o we_o do_v consider_v also_o the_o heresy_n condemn_v in_o his_o day_n by_o he_o and_o his_o authority_n as_o the_o eutychian_o monothelite_n and_o other_o which_o our_o protestant_n also_o do_v condemn_v for_o heresy_n at_o this_o day_n by_o all_o this_o i_o say_v and_o by_o infinite_a other_o argument_n and_o demonstration_n that_o may_v be_v make_v it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o either_o christ_n have_v no_o visible_a church_n or_o catholic_a religion_n in_o those_o day_n roman_a which_o be_v most_o foolish_a and_o wicked_a to_o imagine_v or_o that_o the_o religion_n of_o st._n gregory_n and_o his_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o other_o of_o other_o of_o the_o same_o communion_n be_v in_o that_o age_n the_o only_a true_a catholic_a church_n and_o consequent_o have_v in_o it_o the_o only_a true_a catholic_a faith_n and_o religion_n of_o christ_n whereby_o christian_n may_v be_v save_v which_o also_o be_v prove_v most_o evident_o by_o infinite_a miracle_n wrought_v in_o england_n and_o in_o divers_a other_o country_n upon_o manifold_a occasion_n during_o this_o time_n of_o our_o primitive_a church_n as_o shall_v appear_v more_o in_o particular_a in_o the_o deduction_n of_o our_o second_o point_n which_o be_v the_o continuance_n of_o this_o same_o religion_n from_o st._n augustin_n to_o thomas_n cranmer_n the_o first_o and_o last_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n follow_v by_o succession_n the_o one_o the_o other_o for_o the_o space_n of_o above_o 900_o year_n the_o first_o die_v a_o saint_n the_o last_o end_n in_o apostasy_n as_o after_o shall_v be_v show_v downward_o 3._o wherefore_o to_o come_v to_o the_o second_o point_n about_o the_o deduction_n of_o catholic_a religion_n in_o our_o nation_n from_o st._n augustin_n downward_o first_o of_o all_o st._n bede_n talk_v of_o the_o plant_n thereof_o and_o of_o our_o first_o primitive_a church_n who_o progress_n and_o increase_v he_o describe_v for_o the_o space_n of_o almost_o 140_o year_n after_o the_o entrance_n of_o st._n augustin_n have_v these_o word_n gregorius_n pontifex_fw-la divino_fw-la admonitus_fw-la instinctu_fw-la 22._o servum_fw-la dei_fw-la augustinum_n &_o alios_fw-la plures_fw-la cum_fw-la eo_fw-la monachos_fw-la timentes_fw-la dominum_fw-la misit_fw-la praedicare_fw-la verbum_fw-la dei_fw-la genti_fw-la anglorum_fw-la etc._n etc._n gregory_n the_o pope_n be_v admonish_v by_o heavenly_a instinct_n do_v send_v god_n servant_n augustin_n and_o other_o monk_n with_o he_o that_o fear_v god_n to_o preach_v his_o word_n to_o the_o english_a nation_n in_o the_o 14_o year_n of_o mauritius_n the_o emperor_n which_o be_v of_o christ_n 596_o and_o the_o four_o after_o that_o st._n gregory_n be_v make_v pope_n thanet_n 4_o these_o holy_a man_n land_v in_o the_o isle_n of_o thanet_n belong_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o kent_n for_o that_o the_o whole_a dominion_n of_o the_o saxon_n in_o those_o day_n which_o be_v all_o the_o land_n except_o scotland_n and_o the_o other_o part_n now_o call_v wales_n whither_o the_o relic_n of_o britan_n be_v retire_v be_v divide_v into_o seven_o several_a state_n and_o dominion_n hist_o which_o they_o call_v kingdom_n the_o first_o whereof_o to_o speak_v of_o they_o according_a as_o they_o receive_v the_o faith_n be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o kent_n who_o king_n ethelbert_n be_v the_o four_o in_o number_n from_o hengistus_n that_o begin_v the_o same_o about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 450_o afterward_o first_o of_o all_o other_o receive_v the_o christian_a faith_n at_o the_o preach_n of_o st._n augustin_n about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 600_o that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o year_n after_o they_o have_v reign_v as_o pagan_n there_o 604._o 5._o the_o second_o kingdom_n be_v of_o the_o east-saxons_a and_o contain_v the_o shire_n now_o call_v essex_n middlesex_n and_o hartfordshire_n the_o first_o founder_n of_o which_o kingdom_n be_v erchenwine_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 527_o as_o stow_n and_o some_o other_o do_v hold_v though_o malmesbury_n do_v write_v otherwise_o but_o both_o do_v agree_v that_o under_o king_n seebert_n or_o as_o 5._o bede_n call_v he_o saber_v those_o province_n be_v convert_v to_o christian_a religion_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o st._n mellitus_n fellow_n to_o st._n augustin_n and_o first_o bishop_n of_o their_o chief_a city_n of_o london_n whither_o he_o be_v send_v by_o st._n augustin_n from_o centerbury_n in_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 604._o 6._o 6_o the_o three_o kingdom_n be_v of_o the_o east-angle_n which_o contain_v the_o shire_n of_o norfolk_n suffolk_z cambridge_n and_o the_o isle_n of_o ely._n which_o kingdom_n be_v begin_v about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 492_o by_o one_o vffa_n but_o convert_v after_o to_o
in_o this_o manner_n be_v religion_n first_o plant_v among_o we_o according_a to_o that_o which_o st._n mark_v the_o evangelist_n say_v of_o the_o first_o preacher_n and_o preach_n among_o other_o nation_n and_o gentile_n in_o his_o time_n to_o wit_n domino_fw-la cooperante_fw-la &_o sermonem_fw-la confirmante_fw-la sequentibus_fw-la signis_fw-la christ_n work_v with_o they_o and_o confirm_v their_o preach_v with_o sign_n and_o miracle_n and_o this_o faith_n be_v once_o plant_v do_v take_v such_o deep_a root_n by_o the_o say_v water_v of_o christ_n the_o author_n thereof_o as_o it_o continue_v and_o hold_v out_o from_o time_n to_o time_n through_o all_o difficulty_n and_o difference_n both_o of_o time_n man_n and_o state_n and_o by_o peril_n division_n enmity_n and_o cruel_a war_n that_o fall_v out_o every_o day_n between_o those_o seven_o kingdom_n until_o they_o be_v unite_v all_o under_o one_o monarchy_n some_o 200_o year_n after_o to_o wit_n under_o king_n egbert_n king_n of_o the_o westsaxon_n and_o from_o he_o again_o the_o same_o endure_v other_o 200_o year_n unto_o king_n edward_n the_o confessor_n before_o the_o conquest_n 17._o and_o that_o which_o be_v worthy_a also_o the_o note_n in_o this_o case_n be_v that_o during_o the_o time_n of_o all_o this_o enmity_n emulation_n suspicion_n jealousy_n of_o kingdom_n and_o state_n and_o bloody_a battle_n between_o these_o kingdom_n for_o the_o space_n of_o the_o foresay_a 200_o year_n from_o their_o conversion_n to_o christianity_n until_o they_o come_v to_o be_v a_o monarchy_n enemy_n they_o all_o live_v under_o one_o archbishop_n and_o primate_n of_o canterbury_n hold_v their_o due_a subordination_n and_o good_a correspondence_n with_o he_o and_o by_o he_o with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o other_o catholic_a country_n for_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n no_o otherwise_o than_o if_o they_o have_v be_v all_o friend_n yea_o subject_n and_o province_n of_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o kingdom_n and_o this_o be_v the_o virtue_n and_o force_n of_o catholic_a union_n whereas_o among_o sectary_n every_o little_a difference_n of_o temporal_a state_n yea_o of_o town_n city_n and_o government_n do_v present_o cause_v a_o diversity_n also_o in_o faith_n and_o religion_n sectary_n as_o we_o see_v at_o this_o day_n that_o saxony_n for_o example_n where_o the_o name_n of_o the_o protestant_n first_o begin_v be_v under_o a_o different_a prince_n have_v a_o great_a difference_n also_o in_o religion_n from_o other_o part_n of_o germany_n that_o call_v themselves_o protestant_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o denmark_n and_o swedeland_n though_o they_o profess_v all_o lutheranism_n yet_o be_v the_o manner_n so_o different_a in_o these_o different_a state_n as_o not_o only_o the_o one_o will_v not_o depend_v of_o the_o other_o in_o any_o sort_n of_o subordination_n or_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n as_o in_o england_n we_o see_v they_o do_v but_o neither_o do_v they_o agree_v in_o any_o one_o form_n of_o religion_n or_o substance_n of_o belief_n in_o all_o point_n no_o nor_o in_o one_o state_z itself_o where_o all_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v lutheran_n as_o in_o saxony_n where_o the_o high_a saxon_n allow_v only_o rigid_a or_o straight_a lutheran_n but_o the_o low_a saxony_n allow_v only_o the_o soft_a sort_n and_o expel_v the_o rigid_a or_o severe_a lutheran_n as_o the_o other_o do_v they_o where_o they_o get_v dominion_n 18._o geneva_n and_o berne_n be_v both_o city_n and_o state_n of_o the_o swisser_n and_o both_o of_o they_o profess_v protestancy_n though_o not_o according_a to_o luther_n doctrine_n but_o yet_o the_o temporal_a state_n of_o the_o say_v two_o town_n be_v different_a the_o magistrate_n have_v appoint_v a_o different_a and_o distinct_a form._n which_o in_o england_n also_o we_o see_v by_o experience_n how_o much_o they_o differ_v from_o those_o of_o scotland_n holland_n and_o france_n who_o profess_v themselves_o protestant_n of_o the_o same_o calvinist_n school_n but_o every_o nation_n and_o church_n after_o his_o own_o fashion_n and_o final_o what_o difference_n have_v rise_v in_o england_n itself_o during_o her_o majesty_n only_a government_n betwixt_o puritan_n brownist_n family_n of_o love_n and_o state_n protestant_n as_o 1601._o thomas_n diggs_n call_v they_o no_o man_n can_v be_v ignorant_a but_o to_o what_o difference_n and_o division_n they_o will_v grow_v in_o two_o or_o three_o hundred_o year_n if_o sect_n can_v last_v so_o long_o and_o that_o the_o state_n which_o profess_v they_o be_v enemy_n in_o temporal_a affair_n as_o it_o be_v in_o england_n be_v easy_a to_o guess_v but_o the_o reason_n hereof_o be_v manifest_a to_o wit_n state_n that_o for_o so_o much_o as_o sectary_n make_v their_o own_o judgement_n and_o invention_n the_o rule_n of_o their_o belief_n and_o religion_n and_o their_o temporal_a prince_n their_o absolute_a guider_n and_o immediate_a head_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o as_o these_o prince_n or_o state_n do_v change_n or_o alter_v for_o any_o respect_n whatsoever_o as_o they_o do_v for_o many_o religion_n also_o must_v needs_o alter_v and_o change_v for_o contentment_n or_o interest_n of_o the_o say_a state_n or_o prince_n 19_o but_o to_o return_v to_o our_o deduction_n and_o continuation_n of_o catholic_a religion_n among_o the_o english_a saxon_n after_o they_o come_v to_o be_v a_o monarchy_n to_o wit_n downward_o from_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 800_o it_o be_v first_o to_o be_v note_v that_o assoon_o as_o god_n have_v deliver_v they_o from_o one_o affliction_n which_o be_v the_o continual_a civil_a war_n of_o one_o kingdom_n with_o a_o other_o he_o send_v they_o a_o second_o calamity_n far_o great_a perhaps_o than_o the_o first_o endure_v for_o other_o 200_o year_n which_o be_v the_o continual_a incursion_n and_o devastation_n of_o the_o dane_n who_o pursue_v they_o not_o only_o for_o temporal_a respect_n to_o get_v their_o country_n from_o they_o but_o also_o for_o religion_n itself_o the_o say_v danes_n be_v then_o pagan_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o cruel_a murder_n and_o martyrdom_n as_o well_o of_o st._n edmund_n king_n of_o the_o east-angle_n danes_n martyr_a by_o they_o about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 885_o as_o of_o holy_a elphegus_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n some_o age_n after_o about_o the_o year_n 1011_o and_o of_o divers_a other_o overlong_o hear_v to_o recount_v and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o when_o the_o say_a dane_n 1012._o with_o their_o king_n canutus_n son_n of_o swanus_fw-la come_v once_o by_o god_n holy_a grace_n to_o be_v christian_n which_o be_v soon_o after_o the_o foresay_a martydom_n of_o the_o holy_a archbishop_n elphegus_n they_o submit_v themselves_o with_o humility_n and_o fervour_n of_o spirit_n to_o that_o very_a same_o christian_a faith_n of_o their_o enemy_n the_o englishman_n which_o they_o have_v persecute_v in_o they_o before_o take_v they_o also_o for_o their_o instructor_n which_o be_v a_o token_n that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o christian_a faith_n know_v in_o the_o world_n at_o that_o day_n for_o they_o to_o embrace_v but_o only_o that_o which_o the_o english_a profess_v to_o the_o embrace_v whereof_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o the_o miracle_n wrought_v continual_o in_o confirmation_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o faith_n as_o well_o at_o the_o tomb_n of_o the_o foresay_a martyr_n st._n edmund_n and_o elphegus_n slay_v by_o the_o dane_n themselves_o as_o other_o way_n also_o do_v great_o move_v and_o animate_v they_o 20._o but_o whatsoever_o the_o chief_a motive_n be_v to_o move_v this_o nation_n to_o embrace_v christian_a religion_n this_o be_v certain_a that_o soon_o after_o this_o time_n of_o st._n elphegus_n his_o death_n god_n deliver_v the_o whole_a kingdom_n of_o england_n into_o the_o dane_n hand_n under_o the_o foresay_a king_n canutus_n conversion_n about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 1020._o and_o he_o reign_v and_o hold_v the_o same_o peaceable_o for_o almost_o twenty_o year_n in_o which_o time_n he_o be_v now_o christian_n do_v many_o notable_a act_n of_o a_o good_a religious_a king_n go_v to_o rome_n for_o devotion_n to_o visit_v the_o holy_a sepulcher_n of_o st._n peter_n and_o st._n paul_n give_v great_a alm_n there_o and_o else_o where_o make_v just_a law_n in_o england_n love_v and_o favour_v exceed_o the_o english_a nation_n use_v they_o with_o all_o confidence_n both_o at_o home_n and_o abroad_o marry_a king_n emma_n mother_n to_o king_n edward_n the_o confessor_n thereby_o to_o unite_v himself_o the_o more_o to_o the_o nation_n and_o final_o become_v of_o a_o persecutor_n and_o conqueror_n one_o of_o the_o best_a king_n that_o england_n perhaps_o have_v in_o many_o age_n to_o govern_v she_o 21._o william_n of_o malmesbury_n live_v as_o it_o have_v be_v say_v some_o 500_o year_n ago_o under_o king_n henry_n the_o first_o son_n to_z william_n the_o conqueror_n write_v many_o most_o excellent_a religious_a act_n
of_o this_o king_n canutus_n say_v among_o other_o thing_n thus_o 11._o monasteria_fw-la per_fw-la angliam_fw-la etc._n etc._n he_o do_v repair_v all_o the_o monastery_n in_o england_n that_o be_v overthrow_v or_o deface_v by_o the_o war_n of_o his_o father_n swanus_fw-la or_o himself_o he_o do_v build_v church_n in_o all_o the_o place_n where_o he_o have_v fight_v any_o battle_n and_o appoint_a priest_n for_o the_o say_a church_n who_o shall_v pray_v continual_o to_o the_o world_n end_n for_o the_o soul_n of_o they_o that_o have_v be_v slay_v in_o those_o place_n he_o be_v present_a at_o the_o consecration_n of_o a_o goodly_a church_n in_o a_o place_n call_v aschendum_fw-la where_o he_o have_v his_o chief_a victory_n cause_v both_o the_o noble_n of_o the_o english_a and_o danish_a nation_n to_o offer_v with_o he_o rich_a gift_n to_o the_o say_a church_n etc._n etc._n canutus_n 22._o over_o the_o body_n of_o bless_a st._n edmund_n which_o the_o ancient_a dane_n have_v slay_v he_o build_v a_o church_n worthy_a the_o greatness_n of_o his_o kingly_a heart_n appoint_v there_o both_o a_o abbot_n and_o monk_n and_o give_v they_o many_o possession_n in_o so_o much_o as_o by_o the_o greatness_n of_o his_o gift_n that_o monastery_n at_o this_o day_n be_v above_o all_o the_o rest_n in_o england_n he_o take_v up_o with_o his_o own_o hand_n the_o body_n of_o st._n elphegus_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n slay_v not_o long_o before_o by_o his_o danes_n and_o cause_v the_o same_o to_o be_v be_v carry_v unto_o canterbury_n reverence_v the_o same_o with_o worthy_a honour_n he_o give_v such_o great_a gift_n and_o rare_a jewel_n to_o the_o church_n of_o winchester_n that_o the_o shine_a of_o precious_a stone_n do_v dazzle_v the_o eye_n of_o such_o as_o do_v behold_v they_o etc._n etc._n in_o the_o fifteen_o year_n of_o his_o kingdom_n he_o go_v to_o rome_n by_o land_n and_o have_v stay_v some_o day_n there_o and_o redeem_v his_o sin_n by_o alm_n in_o those_o church_n he_o return_v by_o sea_n to_o england_n etc._n etc._n 23._o thus_o and_o much_o more_o do_v william_n of_o malmesbury_n write_v of_o this_o notable_a king_n canatus_fw-la a_o terrible_a and_o fierce_a warrior_n before_o his_o conversion_n and_o much_o give_v to_o blood_n and_o impiety_n whereby_o may_v easy_o be_v see_v what_o force_n catholic_a religion_n be_v of_o to_o make_v change_n in_o a_o man_n manner_n where_o it_o true_o enter_v let_v protestant_n show_v we_o some_o such_o example_n of_o prince_n convert_v to_o their_o religion_n but_o to_o go_v forward_o in_o malmesbury_n he_o set_v down_o after_o all_o this_o a_o large_a epistle_n of_o king_n canutus_n which_o he_o write_v from_o rome_n or_o in_o the_o way_n homeward_o unto_o the_o two_o archbishop_n egetnothus_n and_o alfricus_n the_o first_o of_o canterbury_n the_o other_o of_o york_n and_o by_o they_o to_o the_o whole_a realm_n give_v they_o account_n of_o his_o journey_n to_o rome_n where_o among_o other_o thing_n he_o write_v thus_o 14._o canutus_n rex_fw-la totius_fw-la angliae_fw-la &_o denmarkiae_n &_o norvegiae_n &_o partis_fw-la suecorum_n etc._n etc._n notifico_fw-la vobis_fw-la i_o noviter_fw-la ivisse_fw-la romam_fw-la oratum_fw-la pro_fw-la redemptione_n peccaminum_fw-la meorum_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o canutus_n king_n of_o all_o england_n denmark_n and_o norway_n and_o part_n of_o swecia_n etc._n etc._n do_v give_v you_o to_o understand_v that_o of_o late_o i_o go_v to_o rome_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o redemption_n of_o my_o sin_n and_o for_o the_o health_n of_o my_o kingdom_n and_o people_n have_v make_v a_o vow_n of_o this_o journey_n long_o ago_o but_o can_v never_o perform_v it_o until_o now_o by_o reason_n i_o be_v hinder_v by_o the_o affair_n of_o my_o kingdom_n and_o now_o i_o do_v yield_v most_o hearty_a thanks_o to_o almighty_a god_n that_o he_o have_v grant_v i_o this_o grace_n to_o come_v and_o visit_v in_o my_o life_n time_n the_o bless_a apostle_n st._n peter_n and_o st._n paul_n and_o all_o the_o sanctuary_n that_o be_v within_o and_o without_o this_o city_n and_o according_a to_o my_o desire_n to_o honour_n and_o worship_v the_o same_o in_o my_o own_o person_n etc._n etc._n 24._o thus_o he_o write_v and_o moreover_o adjoin_v many_o other_o pious_a ordinance_n in_o the_o same_o epistle_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o england_n for_o restitution_n to_o be_v make_v alm_n to_o be_v give_v and_o other_o good_a deed_n to_o be_v do_v exhort_v all_o to_o perform_v they_o willing_o and_o threaten_v they_o that_o shall_v do_v the_o contrary_n and_o william_n of_o malmesbury_n say_v 42._o that_o return_v after_o to_o england_n he_o cause_v the_o same_o to_o be_v strict_o observe_v and_o give_v many_o new_a privilege_n to_o church_n and_o one_o among_o other_o to_o the_o church_n of_o canterbury_n which_o malmesbury_n set_v down_o at_o length_n and_o in_o the_o end_n have_v these_o word_n si_fw-la quis_fw-la verò_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o any_o man_n shall_v perform_v this_o my_o ordination_n with_o a_o prompt_a will_n almighty_a god_n by_o the_o intercession_n of_o the_o most_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n and_o all_o his_o saint_n increase_v his_o portion_n in_o the_o land_n of_o the_o live_n and_o this_o donation_n of_o privilege_n be_v write_v and_o promulgate_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o i_o king_n canutus_n in_o the_o wooden_a church_n in_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 1032._o 23._o thus_o far_o write_v william_n of_o malmesbury_n of_o this_o king_n pious_a disposition_n after_o his_o come_n from_o rome_n 116._o and_o john_n stow_n add_v out_o of_o henry_n of_o huntingdon_n as_o follow_v after_o this_o time_n canutus_n never_o bear_v crown_n upon_o his_o head_n but_o he_o set_v the_o same_o upon_o the_o head_n of_o the_o crucifix_n at_o winchester_n etc._n etc._n and_o thus_o much_o of_o his_o piety_n and_o other_o fruit_n of_o true_a christian_a faith_n which_o he_o have_v receive_v and_o it_o be_v no_o small_a argument_n of_o the_o divine_a power_n thereof_o that_o it_o can_v so_o mollify_v and_o change_v so_o fierce_a a_o warrior_n and_o cruel_a a_o persecutor_n as_o this_o king_n be_v before_o his_o conversion_n 26._o so_o as_o now_o we_o have_v bring_v down_o the_o continuance_n and_o succession_n of_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o christian_a religion_n in_o england_n from_o st._n augustin_n and_o king_n ethelbert_n unto_o king_n canutus_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 400_o year_n and_o that_o this_o be_v no_o particular_a religion_n of_o england_n alone_o but_o the_o common_a general_n faith_n not_o only_o of_o rome_n but_o of_o all_o christendom_n beside_o at_o that_o day_n and_o consequent_o the_o only_a catholic_a religion_n of_o those_o age_n appear_v in_o like_a manner_n by_o other_o word_n of_o the_o king_n former_a letter_n record_v by_o malmesbury_n where_o he_o say_v sit_fw-la autem_fw-la vobis_fw-la notum_fw-la etc._n etc._n be_v it_o know_v unto_o you_o that_o in_o this_o last_o solemnity_n of_o easter_n there_o be_v a_o great_a assembly_n of_o nobility_n here_o in_o rome_n 41._o together_o with_o pope_n john_n and_o the_o emperor_n conrade_n to_o wit_n catholic_n all_o the_o great_a prince_n from_o the_o hill_n garganus_n unto_o this_o other_o next_o the_o sea_n all_o which_o do_v receive_v i_o most_o honourable_o and_o do_v present_v i_o with_o magnificent_a gift_n etc._n etc._n thus_o write_v the_o king_n whereby_o we_o may_v easy_o perceive_v that_o king_n canutus_n be_v hold_v in_o all_o point_n for_o a_o perfect_a catholic_a prince_n see_v that_o both_o pope_n john_n the_o 20_o and_o the_o emperor_n conrade_n the_o second_o do_v esteem_n and_o honour_v he_o so_o high_o 27._o after_o canutus_n succeed_v in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n his_o two_o son_n harold_n and_o hardicanutus_n for_o two_o or_o three_o year_n 1043._o and_o then_o king_n edward_n the_o confessor_n for_o twenty-three_o year_n together_o after_o who_o death_n the_o second_o harold_n son_n of_o earl_n goodwin_n hold_v the_o kingdom_n by_o violence_n against_o both_o english_a and_o dane_n scarce_o one_o year_n william_n duke_n of_o normandy_n come_v in_o as_o all_o man_n know_v and_o conquer_a the_o land_n towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o year_n 1066._o and_o hold_v the_o same_o all_o day_n of_o his_o life_n and_o so_o have_v his_o posterity_n after_o he_o by_o male_n or_o female_a unto_o our_o time_n conquest_n and_o have_v continue_v the_o same_o religion_n which_o he_o find_v or_o bring_v into_o england_n for_o all_o be_v one_o for_o the_o space_n of_o 500_o year_n unto_o king_n henry_n the_o eighth_n time_n which_o may_v be_v prove_v beside_o other_o way_n by_o the_o succession_n of_o our_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n stigand_n a_o english_a man_n be_v the_o twenty-third_a from_o st._n augustin_n hold_v the_o same_o when_o william_n the_o conqueror_n get_v the_o crown_n to_o who_o succeed_v lanfranc_n and_o to_o he_o
anselmus_fw-la and_o so_o successive_o one_o after_o another_o none_o of_o they_o ever_o be_v note_v to_o be_v contrary_a to_o his_o predecessor_n in_o religion_n until_o thomas_n cranmer_n in_o king_n henry_n the_o eighth_n time_n who_o apply_v himself_o to_o the_o religion_n which_o the_o state_n and_o prince_n like_v best_a to_o allow_v of_o in_o that_o time_n and_o after_o the_o king_n death_n agree_v to_o break_v his_o last_o will_n and_o testament_n in_o change_v that_o religion_n into_o zuinglianism_n canterbury_n most_o detest_a by_o his_o majesty_n and_o after_o again_o conspire_v to_o put_v down_o and_o destroy_v all_o the_o king_n child_n and_o to_o set_v up_o the_o duke_n of_o suffolk_n daughter_n and_o final_o be_v put_v to_o death_n both_o for_o heresy_n and_o treason_n in_o queen_n mary_n time_n as_o after_o more_o particular_o shall_v be_v show_v and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o change_n of_o religion_n in_o any_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n from_o the_o begin_n unto_o his_o day_n deduction_n 28._o so_o as_o from_o king_n ethelbert_n the_o first_o christen_v english_a king_n unto_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o be_v the_o eighteen_o from_o william_n the_o conqueror_n and_o more_o than_o eighty_o from_o the_o say_v ethelbert_n one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o faith_n endure_v in_o england_n and_o the_o self_n same_o church_n flourish_v under_o so_o many_o different_a both_o king_n and_o nation_n as_o before_o have_v be_v show_v and_o the_o like_a we_o have_v declare_v to_o have_v be_v for_o the_o first_o 600_o year_n under_o the_o britan_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o never_o be_v know_v to_o have_v change_v their_o religion_n which_o be_v so_o the_o deduction_n and_o demonstration_n be_v so_o clear_a as_o any_o reasonable_a man_n can_v either_o make_v or_o require_v for_o proof_n that_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o religion_n endure_v from_o the_o begin_n to_o the_o end_n among_o they_o 29._o unto_o which_o kind_n of_o proof_n the_o ancient_a holy_a father_n and_o martyr_n st._n irenaeus_n give_v great_a authority_n by_o a_o like_a argument_n for_o that_o have_v make_v the_o like_a enumeration_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o we_o do_v now_o of_o our_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n against_o the_o heretic_n of_o his_o day_n and_o that_o from_o st._n peter_n downward_o to_o pope_n eleutherius_fw-la that_o live_v with_o he_o he_o infer_v this_o conclusion_n est_fw-la plenissima_fw-la haec_fw-la ostensio_fw-la 3._o unam_fw-la &_o eandem_fw-la vivificatricem_fw-la fidem_fw-la esse_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o ecclesiis_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n &_o conservata_fw-la &_o tradita_fw-la in_o unitate_fw-la etc._n etc._n this_o be_v a_o most_o full_a proof_n that_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o lively_a faith_n have_v be_v conserve_v in_o the_o church_n from_o the_o apostle_n day_n unto_o our_o time_n deliver_v from_o one_o to_o another_o in_o unity_n etc._n etc._n and_o if_o that_o be_v a_o most_o full_a proof_n and_o demonstration_n in_o st._n irenaeus_n judgement_n against_o the_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n the_o same_o be_v now_o much_o more_o to_o we_o have_v see_v the_o succession_n of_o so_o many_o age_n since_o and_o note_v the_o manner_n of_o like_a proof_n and_o argument_n in_o all_o other_o father_n after_o he_o as_o namely_o of_o st._n augustin_n 165._o numerate_v sacerdotes_fw-la velab_n ipsa_fw-la petri_n sede_n &_o in_o ordine_fw-la illo_fw-la patrum_fw-la quis_fw-la cui_fw-la successit_fw-la videte_fw-la number_v the_o priest_n that_o have_v succeed_v the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o even_o from_o the_o seat_n of_o peter_n himself_o and_o then_o further_o in_o hoc_fw-la ordine_fw-la successionis_fw-la nullus_fw-la donatista_n episcopus_fw-la invenitur_fw-la no_o one_o donatist_n bishop_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o this_o rank_n of_o succession_n and_o yet_o more_o ibid._n 30._o et_fw-la si_fw-la in_o illum_fw-la ordinem_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la quisquam_fw-la traditor_fw-la per_fw-la illa_fw-la tempora_fw-la subrepsisset_fw-la nihil_fw-la praejudicaret_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la and_o if_o any_o traitor_n in_o those_o day_n shall_v have_v creep_v into_o that_o order_n and_o rank_n of_o roman_a bishop_n for_o of_o they_o he_o speak_v it_o shall_v not_o have_v prejudicate_v the_o church_n of_o god._n 31._o which_o say_v of_o st._n austin_n may_v serve_v we_o not_o only_o to_o answer_v whatsoever_o heretic_n do_v or_o may_v object_v true_a or_o false_a against_o the_o life_n of_o any_o latter_a roman_a bishop_n but_o for_o defence_n also_o of_o the_o rank_n and_o succession_n of_o our_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n notwithstanding_o the_o apostasy_n of_o canterbury_n thomas_n cranmer_n or_o any_o other_o his_o like_a that_o for_o these_o latter_a year_n may_v have_v creep_v in_o as_o st._n austin_n say_v or_o be_v thrust_v in_o and_o by_o violence_n occupy_v that_o see_v and_o seat_n unworthy_o either_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o life_n or_o religion_n or_o both_o see_v that_o the_o former_a succession_n as_o well_o of_o man_n as_o of_o doctrine_n from_o st._n austin_n to_o cranmer_n be_v manifest_a and_o evident_a for_o the_o space_n of_o 900_o year_n without_o interruption_n as_o also_o that_o they_o be_v unite_v all_o this_o time_n in_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n with_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o christendom_n as_o member_n and_o branch_n of_o their_o head_n and_o body_n and_o that_o the_o first_o breach_n and_o interruption_n make_v thereof_o in_o that_o see_v by_o cranmer_n and_o continue_v after_o he_o by_o some_o of_o his_o follower_n be_v note_v present_o and_o contradict_v yea_o censure_v and_o condemn_v also_o by_o sentence_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o thereupon_o reject_v and_o abhor_v by_o the_o principal_a of_o his_o own_o people_n both_o clergy_n and_o laity_n at_o that_o time_n 32._o and_o the_o same_o contradiction_n endure_v to_o this_o day_n and_o will_v do_v ever_o in_o those_o that_o conserve_v their_o ancient_a faith_n and_o religion_n and_o do_v adhere_v to_o the_o lawful_a succession_n of_o his_o predecessor_n against_o he_o and_o his_o partner_n until_o it_o please_v almighty_a god_n to_o put_v the_o say_a order_n and_o lawful_a succession_n in_o joint_n again_o and_o restore_v that_o chief_a and_o head_n conduct_v of_o our_o country_n to_o his_o former_a integrity_n whereby_o the_o water_n of_o true_a catholic_a religion_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v derive_v to_o the_o people_n of_o our_o land_n and_o will_v be_v again_o when_o god_n wrath_n for_o our_o sin_n shall_v be_v pacify_v and_o his_o mercy_n induce_v he_o to_o permit_v as_o often_o otherwise_o he_o have_v do_v that_o all_o return_n to_o the_o accustom_a ancient_n course_n of_o catholic_a faith_n and_o religion_n again_o see_v in_o very_a deed_n there_o be_v none_o but_o that_o for_o so_o much_o as_o sect_n and_o new_a religion_n be_v but_o invention_n and_o entertainment_n of_o time_n whilst_o god_n punish_v some_o sin_n in_o his_o servant_n and_o after_o all_o return_v where_o it_o be_v before_o 33._o and_o this_o have_v we_o speak_v by_o the_o way_n and_o by_o occasion_n of_o cranmer_n that_o be_v the_o first_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n that_o ever_o break_v from_o the_o roman_a faith_n but_o notwithstanding_o his_o apostasy_n catholic_a religion_n be_v not_o extinguish_v in_o england_n by_o that_o but_o remain_v there_o still_o all_o king_n henry_n time_n as_o also_o during_o the_o reign_n of_o his_o three_o child_n king_n and_o queen_n edward_n mary_n and_o elizabeth_n unto_o these_o our_o day_n as_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n follow_v more_o large_o and_o particular_o we_o be_v to_o demonstrate_v chap._n xii_o how_o catholic_a religion_n have_v continue_v and_o persevere_v in_o england_n during_o the_o time_n and_o reign_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o and_o his_o three_o child_n king_n edward_n queen_n marry_o and_o queen_n elizabeth_n notwithstanding_o all_o the_o trouble_n change_n alteration_n and_o tribulation_n that_o have_v fall_v out_o and_o that_o the_o same_o religion_n be_v like_a to_o continue_v to_o the_o world_n end_n if_o our_o sin_n hinder_v not_o the_o deduction_n which_o we_o have_v hitherto_o make_v of_o catholic_a religion_n from_o our_o first_o conversion_n under_o st._n gregory_n and_o king_n ethelbert_n of_o kent_n 1509._o unto_o the_o reign_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o with_o who_o concur_v in_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n leo_n the_o ten_o and_o clemens_n the_o seven_o and_o other_o pope_n successor_n of_o st._n gregory_n have_v be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o time_n of_o peace_n and_o without_o any_o public_a discontinuance_n at_o all_o but_o now_o be_v we_o to_o prosecute_v the_o same_o matter_n from_o the_o alteration_n make_v by_o king_n henry_n downward_o unto_o our_o day_n 1530._o and_o therein_o to_o show_v that_o albeit_o in_o the_o external_a face_n and_o form_n of_o religion_n there_o have_v be_v divers_a mutation_n as_o tempestuous_a wind_n and_o storm_n for_o the_o present_a yet_o have_v the_o catholic_a
religion_n hold_v firm_a her_o continuance_n throughout_o all_o these_o tempest_n yea_o show_v herself_o more_o clear_a eminent_a and_o notorious_a by_o the_o confession_n of_o her_o most_o constant_a member_n than_o she_o do_v before_o in_o peace_n which_o be_v the_o proper_a privilege_n and_o excellency_n of_o truth_n overthrow_v and_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v the_o pilar_n of_o truth_n above_o all_o sect_n and_o heresy_n as_o st._n cyprian_n st._n austin_n and_o other_o father_n do_v note_n to_o come_v out_o of_o persecution_n as_o gold_n out_o of_o fire_n more_o bright_a illustrious_a and_o eminent_a than_o before_o or_o as_o a_o excellent_a ship_n well_o tackle_v and_o skilful_o guide_v break_v through_o the_o wave_n without_o hurt_n at_o all_o 2._o and_o this_o have_v be_v prove_v now_o by_o the_o experience_n of_o 1600_o year_n wherein_o this_o ship_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v pass_v through_o no_o few_o storm_n than_o there_o be_v year_n and_o overcome_v they_o all_o whereas_o many_o hundred_o sect_n and_o sectary_n in_o the_o mean_a space_n have_v be_v break_v in_o piece_n perish_v and_o consume_v either_o by_o division_n among_o themselves_o or_o with_o a_o little_a extern_a persecution_n or_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n whereof_o i_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o allege_v many_o example_n for_o that_o the_o world_n be_v full_a of_o they_o and_o all_o history_n do_v testify_v and_o our_o former_a deduction_n have_v make_v it_o clear_a and_o one_o domestical_a example_n of_o our_o own_o day_n there_o be_v before_o our_o eye_n which_o may_v serve_v for_o all_o the_o rest_n to_o wit_n that_o some_o severity_n be_v begin_v by_o our_o state_n against_o two_o opposite_a religion_n in_o england_n the_o catholic_n and_o puritan_n though_o much_o more_o rigorous_a against_o the_o former_a than_o the_o second_o yet_o have_v catholic_a religion_n increase_v thereby_o and_o puritanism_n be_v break_v and_o in_o a_o manner_n dissolve_v the_o reason_n of_o which_o different_a success_n we_o shall_v touch_v afterward_o now_o to_o the_o purpose_n we_o have_v in_o hand_n 3._o for_o the_o first_o twenty_o year_n of_o king_n henry_n reign_n unto_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 1530_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o integrity_n of_o catholic_a religion_n union_n and_o communion_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o christendom_n and_o perfect_a subordination_n to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a of_o rome_n remain_v in_o england_n whole_a as_o the_o say_a king_n have_v receive_v it_o from_o the_o most_o prudent_a religious_a and_o victorious_a prince_n his_o father_n king_n henry_n the_o seven_o and_o he_o again_o from_o his_o renown_a ancestor_n who_o yet_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o as_o he_o do_v excel_v in_o knowledge_n of_o learning_n so_o be_v he_o nothing_o inferior_a to_o they_o in_o zeal_n of_o defend_v the_o purity_n of_o catholic_a faith_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o multitude_n of_o sectary_n and_o heretic_n as_o well_o waldensians_n religion_n arrian_n anabaptist_n lollard_n and_o wickliffian_n as_o lutheran_n zwinglians_n calvinist_n and_o the_o like_a burn_v by_o he_o for_o dissent_v from_o the_o universal_a know_a church_n and_o roman_a religion_n in_o the_o first_o say_v twenty_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n which_o fox_n set_v down_o with_o great_a complaint_n and_o regret_n and_o we_o shall_v after_o declare_v more_o at_o large_a in_o the_o second_o and_o three_o part_n of_o this_o treatise_n 4._o and_o when_o luther_n afterward_o rise_v up_o in_o the_o eight_o year_n of_o this_o glorious_a king_n reign_n which_o be_v the_o year_n of_o christ_n 1517_o king_n henry_n cause_v first_o the_o famous_a learned_a bishop_n john_n fisher_n of_o rochester_n to_o confute_v the_o mad_a fellow_n and_o after_o he_o vouchsafe_v to_o do_v the_o same_o himself_o by_o a_o most_o excellent_a book_n 1523._o which_o i_o have_v read_v and_o see_v subscribe_v with_o his_o own_o hand_n with_o the_o dedication_n thereof_o by_o his_o ambassador_n dr._n clark_n after_o bishop_n of_o bath_n and_o wells_n unto_o pope_n leo_fw-la the_o ten_o who_o in_o gratification_n thereof_o give_v his_o majesty_n and_o all_o his_o posterity_n the_o most_o honourable_a style_n and_o title_n of_o defender_n of_o the_o faith._n pope_n 5._o and_o thus_o continue_a king_n henry_n and_o the_o religion_n under_o he_o in_o england_n until_o the_o foresay_a year_n 1530._o at_o what_o time_n there_o happen_v a_o most_o fatal_a and_o unfortunate_a contention_n between_o clement_n the_o seven_o the_o pope_n and_o he_o about_o his_o divorce_n from_o queen_n katherine_n he_o begin_v first_o to_o show_v his_o grief_n and_o displeasure_n against_o cardinal_n wolsey_n and_o second_o against_o the_o whole_a clergy_n of_o england_n condemn_v the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o in_o the_o forfeiture_n of_o praemunire_n who_o in_o their_o submission_n and_o supplication_n for_o pardon_n either_o of_o fear_n or_o flattery_n call_v he_o supreme_a head_n of_o their_o church_n of_o england_n 1530._o 6._o the_o king_n also_o begin_v to_o show_v open_o his_o disgust_n with_o the_o pope_n for_o not_o yield_v to_o his_o pretence_n and_o petition_n but_o what_o be_v the_o king_n religion_n change_v by_o this_o or_o do_v he_o alter_v his_o judgement_n in_o faith_n for_o this_o disaffection_n towards_o the_o pope_n no_o true_o as_o well_o appear_v by_o his_o other_o action_n for_o he_o frequent_v the_o mass_n no_o less_o than_o before_o he_o burn_v heretic_n more_o than_o ever_o as_o appear_v by_o fox_n his_o account_n and_o so_o you_o shall_v see_v in_o all_o the_o residue_n of_o his_o life_n which_o be_v sixteen_o year_n after_o this_o heretic_n and_o albeit_o at_o this_o time_n be_v much_o trouble_v with_o this_o breach_n with_o the_o pope_n he_o attend_v less_o to_o repress_v heresy_n for_o some_o year_n than_o he_o have_v do_v before_o yet_o be_v his_o judgement_n no_o less_o against_o they_o than_o from_o the_o beginning_n and_o the_o long_o he_o live_v the_o more_o grow_v his_o aversion_n from_o they_o as_o may_v easy_o appear_v to_o he_o that_o will_v but_o look_v over_o the_o year_n that_o ensue_v after_o this_o disgust_n and_o breach_n with_o pope_n clement_n the_o seven_o for_o albeit_o in_o the_o next_o year_n after_o to_o wit_n 1531_o he_o proceed_v to_o show_v his_o aversion_n from_o that_o pope_n yet_o do_v not_o he_o neglect_v the_o punishment_n of_o lutheran_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o burn_a of_o david_n foster_n valentine_n frieze_n 1531._o john_n tenkesbury_n the_o old_a man_n of_o buckingham_n and_o other_o which_o fox_n do_v complain_v of_o 7._o in_o the_o year_n 1532._o the_o king_n proceed_v in_o the_o same_o discontentment_n with_o the_o pope_n do_v certain_a thing_n rather_o to_o terrify_v he_o than_o to_o make_v any_o change_n of_o religion_n audley_n as_o make_v sir_n thomas_n audley_n chancellor_n in_o the_o place_n of_o sir_n thomas_n more_o which_o audley_n be_v suspect_v to_o favour_n lutheranism_n in_o use_v also_o familiar_o thomas_z cromwell_n a_o man_n of_o the_o same_o humour_n or_o worse_o cromwell_n to_o which_o end_n also_o he_o go_v over_o into_o france_n confer_v with_o francis_n the_o french_a king_n and_o persuade_v he_o to_o summon_v the_o pope_n to_o a_o general_n council_n but_o he_o will_v not_o whereupon_o king_n henry_n return_v into_o england_n not_o only_o speak_v open_a word_n against_o pope_n clement_n but_o suffer_v one_o dr._n cutwyn_n dean_n of_o hertfort_n to_o preach_v public_o against_o he_o in_o a_o sermon_n before_o the_o king_n himself_o king._n in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o franciscan_a friar_n of_o greenwich_n who_o pass_v so_o far_o in_o that_o vein_n as_o a_o grave_a religious_a father_n name_v elstow_n reprehend_v he_o public_o out_o of_o the_o choir_n or_o roodloft_o for_o which_o he_o be_v send_v to_o prison_n and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o open_a contradiction_n that_o king_n henry_n have_v within_o his_o realm_n about_o this_o controversy_n with_o the_o pope_n and_o yet_o do_v fox_n recount_v unto_o we_o divers_a of_o his_o martyr_n most_o opposite_a to_o the_o pope_n that_o be_v burn_v by_o the_o king_n authority_n this_o year_n as_o namely_o james_n baynam_n robert_n debnam_n nicolas_n marish_a robert_n king_n and_o other_o 8._o there_o follow_v the_o year_n 1533_o wherein_o his_o majesty_n be_v marry_v to_o queen_n ann_n bullen_n 1533._o and_o consequent_o this_o year_n pass_v most_o in_o triumph_n about_o coronation_n of_o the_o say_a queen_n as_o also_o the_o birth_n and_o baptism_n of_o her_o majesty_n that_o now_o be_v so_o as_o little_a be_v do_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n any_o way_n but_o a_o great_a gate_n seem_v to_o be_v open_v to_o the_o protestant_n and_o to_o luther_n favourer_n by_o this_o marriage_n in_o so_o much_o that_o fox_n do_v assign_v the_o ground_n of_o his_o gospel_n principal_o from_o this_o year_n in_o respect_n both_o
the_o first_o a_o earnest_n lutheran_n the_o other_o two_o zwinglian_o 14._o all_o these_o demonstration_n i_o say_v king_n henry_n make_v this_o year_n of_o his_o catholic_a opinion_n and_o judgement_n in_o all_o point_n except_o in_o matter_n of_o supremacy_n which_o be_v his_o own_o interest_n and_o for_o the_o other_o six_o year_n which_o he_o live_v afterward_o he_o varied_a not_o from_o this_o but_o rather_o confirm_v the_o same_o as_o we_o may_v see_v by_o his_o burn_n of_o anne_n askew_n for_o deny_v the_o real_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n not_o many_o month_n before_o his_o death_n and_o by_o his_o own_o hear_n of_o mass_n in_o his_o bed_n and_o receive_v the_o bless_a sacrament_n on_o his_o knee_n when_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o stand_v on_o his_o foot_n but_o especial_o by_o that_o which_o bishop_n gardiner_n testify_v while_o he_o live_v and_o preach_v the_o same_o in_o a_o public_a sermon_n at_o paul_n cross_n that_o the_o say_a king_n not_o long_o before_o his_o die_a day_n when_o he_o send_v he_o ambassador_n to_o a_o diet_n in_o germany_n rome_n give_v he_o special_a commission_n in_o secret_a to_o procure_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o some_o catholic_a prince_n and_o of_o the_o pope_n legate_n and_o nuntio_n there_o some_o honourable_a condition_n for_o his_o majesty_n reconciliation_n with_o the_o pope_n and_o see_v of_o rome_n again_o which_o though_o god_n of_o his_o secret_a judgement_n permit_v he_o not_o to_o effectuate_v by_o the_o shortness_n of_o his_o life_n yet_o appear_v it_o by_o this_o what_o his_o sense_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n be_v 15._o so_o then_o now_o we_o have_v that_o catholic_a church_n and_o religion_n continue_v in_o england_n during_o king_n henry_n reign_n both_o in_o prince_n and_o people_n though_o much_o turmoil_v by_o faction_n schism_n and_o heresy_n wherein_o notwithstanding_o she_o no_o more_o lose_v her_o possession_n and_o continuance_n than_o she_o do_v in_o time_n of_o the_o rage_a arian_n donatist_n or_o other_o sectary_n that_o prevail_v in_o power_n for_o the_o present_a time_n either_o general_o or_o in_o some_o particular_a province_n as_o lutheran_n and_o zwinglian_o also_o do_v in_o king_n henry_n day_n in_o divers_a place_n or_o do_v at_o this_o day_n which_o yet_o be_v and_o be_v so_o as_o they_o be_v easy_o distinguish_v from_o the_o other_o not_o only_o by_o the_o division_n and_o difference_n among_o themselves_o but_o also_o for_o that_o the_o union_n of_o the_o catholic_a religion_n do_v ever_o show_v itself_o in_o some_o region_n adjoin_v yea_o common_o also_o even_o in_o those_o very_a place_n where_o these_o sect_n do_v range_v and_o bear_v most_o rule_v some_o catholic_n do_v remain_v to_o contradict_v they_o open_o and_o to_o plead_v for_o their_o old_a possession_n persecution_n and_o the_o great_a the_o persecution_n be_v the_o great_a and_o more_o eminent_a be_v this_o catholic_a contradict_v part_n stir_v up_o and_o increase_v by_o the_o very_a power_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n in_o persecution_n as_o before_o have_v be_v note_v 16._o and_o this_o be_v the_o state_n of_o catholic_a religion_n in_o king_n henry_n reign_n to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v hold_v and_o defend_v public_o except_o only_o the_o article_n of_o ecclesiastical_a supremacy_n deny_v to_o the_o pope_n whereunto_o notwithstanding_o many_o thousand_o of_o the_o realm_n never_o agree_v and_o consequent_o be_v true_o catholic_o heretic_n also_o be_v punish_v especial_o those_o three_o sect_n that_o principal_o range_v at_o that_o time_n to_o wit_n lutheran_n anabaptist_n and_o zwinglian_o all_o three_o take_v their_o origin_n from_o luther_n so_o as_o of_o all_o these_o three_o sect_n king_n henry_n burn_v many_o and_o albeit_o of_o the_o four_o sort_n of_o man_n that_o oppose_v themselves_o against_o he_o to_o wit_n catholic_o he_o put_v divers_a also_o to_o death_n under_o the_o name_n of_o papist_n yet_o both_o this_o very_a name_n as_o also_o the_o different_a manner_n of_o their_o death_n but_o above_o all_o the_o nature_n of_o their_o cause_n do_v evident_o distinguish_v they_o from_o the_o other_o and_o show_v that_o their_o death_n be_v true_a martyrdom_n and_o the_o other_o due_a punishment_n for_o their_o wickedness_n punishable_a 17._o for_o first_o the_o name_n of_o papist_n that_o signify_v they_o to_o hold_v with_o the_o pope_n as_o supreme_a head_n of_o their_o church_n import_v no_o more_o hurt_n or_o offence_n than_o if_o any_o sedition_n move_v within_o any_o realm_n those_o that_o hold_v with_o the_o king_n shall_v be_v call_v kingling_n or_o those_o for_o example_n that_o hold_v part_n with_o the_o mayor_n of_o london_n when_o any_o apprentice_n will_v raise_v rebellion_n against_o he_o shall_v scornful_o be_v call_v mayorist_n and_o general_o for_o a_o man_n to_o hold_v with_o his_o lawful_a superior_a can_v be_v term_v a_o faction_n and_o much_o less_o a_o heresy_n both_o 18._o second_o the_o very_a difference_n and_o manner_n of_o punishment_n use_v by_o king_n henry_n towards_o both_o part_n the_o one_o by_o fire_n the_o other_o by_o behead_n and_o hang_v do_v evident_o show_v what_o difference_n he_o make_v of_o they_o the_o one_o as_o of_o heretic_n and_o the_o other_o as_o of_o man_n offend_v against_o his_o state_n and_o person_n after_o he_o have_v make_v the_o supremacy_n ecclesiastical_a to_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o his_o state_n and_o of_o his_o royal_a dignity_n whereby_o also_o he_o show_v that_o he_o be_v no_o gospeller_n 19_o but_o now_o for_o the_o three_o point_n which_o be_v the_o most_o important_a of_o all_o the_o rest_n to_o show_v the_o difference_n in_o these_o man_n cause_n and_o that_o the_o catholic_n suffer_v innocent_o for_o their_o conscience_n and_o consequent_o be_v true_a martyr_n and_o that_o the_o other_o sort_n of_o sectary_n be_v punish_v deserve_o as_o malefactor_n it_o be_v not_o hard_a to_o prove_v to_o he_o that_o be_v of_o any_o mean_a consideration_n or_o indifferency_n in_o matter_n for_o first_o who_o will_v not_o grant_v but_o that_o he_o that_o be_v a_o honest_a and_o good_a man_n when_o he_o go_v to_o bed_v for_o example_n can_v easy_o be_v make_v a_o evil_a man_n in_o his_o sleep_n without_o any_o motive_n of_o his_o affection_n or_o free_a will_n at_o all_o and_o again_o he_o that_o be_v a_o good_a and_o true_a subject_n towards_o his_o prince_n and_o country_n this_o day_n how_o can_v he_o well_o to_o morrow_n be_v judge_v a_o traitor_n the_o high_a sin_n of_o all_o other_o if_o in_o the_o mean_a space_n he_o change_v not_o his_o mind_n nor_o do_v any_o act_n of_o word_n or_o deed_n contrary_a to_o that_o he_o do_v before_o and_o yet_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o catholic_n put_v to_o death_n under_o king_n henry_n for_o the_o supremacy_n 20._o as_o for_o example_n sir_n thomas_n more_o be_v prisoner_n in_o the_o tower_n of_o london_n upon_o some_o displeasure_n in_o the_o year_n 1534_o where_o he_o attend_v only_o to_o his_o prayer_n as_o epistle_n himself_o testify_v and_o to_o the_o write_n of_o some_o spiritual_a book_n pertain_v to_o the_o contempt_n of_o this_o present_a transitory_a world_n there_o pass_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n a_o statute_n in_o the_o parliament-house_n appoint_v that_o whosoever_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o king_n majesty_n to_o be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a shall_v be_v a_o traitor_n and_o suffer_v death_n for_o it_o which_o seem_v a_o new_a and_o strange_a thing_n unto_o he_o and_o contrary_a to_o the_o belief_n of_o all_o his_o forefather_n he_o can_v not_o so_o soon_o conform_v himself_o thereunto_o and_o consequent_o refuse_v when_o he_o be_v demand_v to_o subscribe_v to_o the_o statute_n and_o to_o make_v so_o great_a a_o change_n in_o his_o faith_n upon_o the_o change_n of_o other_o for_o which_o soon_o after_o he_o be_v put_v to_o death_n not_o for_o that_o he_o have_v attempt_v alter_v henry_n or_o innovate_v any_o thing_n as_o you_o see_v but_o for_o that_o he_o will_v not_o alter_v and_o make_v innovation_n and_o this_o be_v the_o proper_a true_a cause_n of_o all_o catholic_n that_o suffer_v for_o the_o supremacy_n under_o king_n henry_n viii_o 20._o but_o on_o the_o contrary_a side_n the_o other_o that_o be_v put_v to_o death_n by_o he_o as_o sectary_n do_v wicked_o and_o presumptuous_o alter_v and_o innovate_v of_o their_o own_o head_n many_o thing_n about_o belief_n and_o doctrine_n different_a from_o that_o which_o they_o have_v receive_v and_o contrary_a to_o the_o belief_n of_o all_o their_o forefather_n ancient_a christian_n for_o many_o age_n together_o and_o that_o with_o such_o obstinacy_n as_o no_o reason_n authority_n discipline_n or_o order_n no_o witness_n human_n or_o divine_a can_v prevail_v with_o they_o and_o albeit_o for_o this_o obstinacy_n
make_v this_o little_a boy_n legitimate_a and_o prove_v his_o mother_n to_o be_v no_o whore_n 44._o and_o of_o this_o i_o may_v give_v infinite_a example_n out_o of_o john_n fox_n what_o substantial_a ground_n and_o motive_n many_o of_o his_o martyr_n have_v to_o run_v to_o the_o fire_n or_o rather_o how_o without_o all_o ground_n or_o probable_a reason_n in_o the_o world_n error_n but_o only_o wilful_a pride_n and_o obstinacy_n most_o of_o they_o thrust_v themselves_o to_o death_n no_o less_o than_o in_o old_a time_n do_v the_o massilian_n montanist_n circumcellian_n and_o martyrian_o most_o famous_a heretic_n upon_o the_o like_a madness_n as_o after_o we_o be_v to_o show_v more_o at_o large_a in_o the_o 2._o three_o part_n where_o i_o be_o to_o treat_v of_o these_o matter_n more_o particular_o and_o to_o give_v you_o if_o i_o be_v not_o deceive_v large_a matter_n of_o laughter_n or_o rather_o of_o compassion_n in_o this_o behalf_n now_o this_o shall_v be_v sufficient_a to_o show_v both_o the_o great_a number_n and_o respective_a quality_n of_o domestical_a witness_n for_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o continuance_n thereof_o in_o our_o country_n during_o the_o time_n of_o this_o sharp_a persecution_n under_o her_o majesty_n and_o that_o never_o more_o than_o in_o this_o time_n have_v the_o catholic_a church_n be_v perspicuous_a honourable_a and_o eminent_a in_o our_o realm_n which_o be_v altogether_o contrary_a to_o that_o which_o john_n fox_n ascribe_v to_o his_o church_n who_o invisibility_n obscurity_n and_o lurk_v from_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n he_o both_o grant_v and_o excuse_v by_o the_o presence_n of_o persecution_n against_o she_o whereas_o we_o hold_v on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o the_o true_a church_n and_o consequent_o we_o be_v ever_o more_o visible_a and_o notorious_o know_v in_o time_n of_o affliction_n and_o persecution_n than_o in_o peace_n 45._o and_o so_o we_o have_v show_v by_o example_n of_o our_o english_a church_n especial_o in_o this_o present_a age_n wherein_o not_o only_o domestical_a suffering_n at_o home_n have_v come_v by_o fame_n book_n and_o write_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o foreign_a nation_n and_o thereby_o also_o the_o notice_n of_o so_o many_o worthy_a constant_a catholic_n that_o be_v within_o the_o realm_n but_o whole_a troop_n also_o both_o of_o english_a man_n and_o woman_n in_o exile_n for_o their_o conscience_n do_v represent_v the_o same_o daily_a to_o their_o eye_n as_o it_o be_v by_o a_o lively_a spectacle_n to_o the_o wonder_n of_o the_o christian_a world._n but_o above_o all_o the_o rest_n they_o must_v needs_o be_v great_o move_v with_o the_o sight_n of_o whole_a company_n family_n and_o community_n of_o english_a of_o both_o sex_n of_o tender_a age_n and_o those_o for_o the_o most_o part_n of_o very_o principal_a good_a birth_n and_o parentage_n that_o have_v come_v forth_o of_o our_o country_n for_o the_o love_n of_o religion_n and_o live_v with_o great_a edification_n in_o other_o nation_n partly_o in_o college_n and_o seminary_n partly_o in_o religious_a convent_v and_o monastery_n yield_v great_a admiration_n to_o stranger_n for_o their_o rare_a virtue_n of_o piety_n patience_n contentment_n and_o devotion_n and_o as_o for_o college_n and_o seminary_n religion_n those_o of_o st._n omers_n and_o douai_n in_o flanders_n of_o rheims_n in_o france_n of_o rome_n in_o italy_n of_o valliadolid_n sevill_n and_o st._n lucre_n in_o spain_n and_o of_o lisbon_n in_o portugal_n do_v sufficient_o testify_v and_o as_o for_o monastery_n both_o of_o man_n and_o woman_n they_o be_v not_o unknown_a as_o that_o venerable_a company_n of_o english_a carthusian_n in_o mechlyn_n the_o honourable_a religious_a house_n of_o english_a noble_a and_o gentlewoman_n in_o brussels_n louvain_n and_o lisbon_n who_o rare_a virtue_n do_v singular_o edify_v all_o those_o that_o know_v they_o and_o great_o illustrate_v the_o name_n of_o our_o country_n for_o religious_a piety_n with_o foreign_a nation_n all_o these_o i_o say_v do_v bear_v witness_n at_o this_o day_n to_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o to_o we_o also_o that_o god_n be_v thank_v the_o fire_n and_o fervour_n of_o catholic_a religion_n which_o christ_n come_v to_o plant_v upon_o earth_n be_v not_o extinguish_v by_o so_o long_a and_o grievous_a persecution_n in_o our_o country_n but_o rather_o increase_v at_o least_o in_o intention_n as_o philosopher_n do_v speak_v though_o not_o in_o extension_n 46._o and_o true_o when_o i_o consider_v the_o matter_n more_o serious_o with_o myself_o treatise_n i_o doubt_v much_o whether_o england_n if_o it_o have_v continue_v catholic_n have_v ever_o enjoy_v such_o excellent_a education_n for_o their_o youth_n at_o home_n as_o by_o occasion_n of_o this_o tribulation_n god_n have_v give_v they_o abroad_o in_o foreign_a nation_n certain_o the_o example_n be_v rare_a and_o never_o hear_v of_o in_o former_a time_n and_o at_o this_o day_n the_o like_a be_v see_v in_o few_o other_o nation_n beside_o we_o but_o in_o none_o of_o those_o that_o have_v suffer_v for_o catholic_a religion_n be_v this_o blessing_n find_v so_o abundant_o as_o in_o we_o god_n make_v we_o grateful_a for_o it_o for_o if_o our_o ingratitude_n turn_v not_o the_o course_n of_o his_o mercy_n hitherto_o use_v towards_o we_o it_o seem_v evident_a that_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v the_o seed_n of_o catholic_a religion_n to_o be_v extinguish_v in_o england_n have_v conserve_v the_o same_o so_o potent_o and_o strange_o unto_o this_o day_n which_o be_v from_o the_o first_o preach_v of_o the_o apostle_n and_o apostolic-man_n to_o the_o britan_n unto_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n gregory_n i._o under_o who_o our_o english_a nation_n be_v convert_v as_o have_v be_v declare_v and_o from_o thence_o again_o downward_o unto_o we_o which_o be_v more_o than_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o so_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o he_o will_v to_o the_o world_n end_n if_o our_o sin_n deserve_v not_o the_o contrary_a and_o this_o shall_v serve_v for_o this_o first_o part_n contain_v the_o deduction_n and_o continuance_n of_o catholic_a religion_n in_o england_n without_o interruption_n for_o more_o than_o fifteen_o hundred_o year_n together_o now_o will_v we_o pass_v to_o the_o second_o part_n to_o examine_v the_o same_o succession_n in_o protestant_n religion_n throughout_o all_o these_o age_n if_o it_o may_v be_v find_v make_v our_o conclusion_n as_o after_o you_o shall_v see_v that_o as_o our_o religion_n enter_v first_o and_o have_v never_o leave_v england_n unto_o this_o hour_n so_o the_o religion_n of_o john_n fox_n in_o the_o form_n that_o he_o will_v have_v it_o be_v never_o yet_o admit_v into_o england_n public_o by_o any_o prince_n or_o potentate_n whatsoever_o until_o this_o present_a day_n nor_o ever_o like_a to_o be_v and_o this_o shall_v serve_v for_o the_o first_o part_n of_o our_o treatise_n the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o part._n the_o second_o part_n of_o this_o treatise_n contain_v the_o search_n after_o the_o protestant_n church_n from_o the_o beginning_n of_o christendom_n to_o our_o day_n the_o argument_n have_v declare_v in_o the_o former_a part_n of_o this_o treatise_n how_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n be_v first_o preach_v to_o the_o britan_n at_o two_o several_a time_n and_o then_o to_o the_o english_a nation_n and_o all_o by_o roman_a preacher_n and_o that_o the_o same_o faith_n have_v continue_v from_o age_n to_o age_n in_o a_o visible_a conspicuous_a church_n until_o our_o day_n there_o remain_v now_o that_o we_o examine_v in_o this_o second_o part_n where_o the_o protestant_n church_n be_v in_o all_o this_o time_n and_o whether_o they_o have_v any_o at_o all_o and_o if_o they_o have_v of_o what_o sort_n of_o man_n it_o consist_v and_o whether_o it_o be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o church_n before-described_n or_o partly_o the_o same_o partly_o different_a or_o whether_o they_o can_v stand_v together_o be_v opposite_a in_o any_o one_o point_n of_o faith_n moreover_o whether_o the_o one_o do_v persecute_v the_o other_o or_o may_v be_v reconcile_v or_o agree_v together_o and_o final_o what_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o at_o this_o day_n for_o examination_n of_o which_o point_n we_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o run_v over_o again_o with_o more_o advice_n all_o the_o former_a sixteen_o age_n from_o christ_n downward_o and_o therein_o to_o see_v and_o consider_v what_o church_n either_o flourish_v or_o prevail_v throughout_o every_o age_n either_o we_o or_o that_o of_o john_n fox_n and_o which_o of_o they_o be_v likely_o to_o have_v come_v down_o from_o the_o apostle_n as_o also_o whether_o that_o church_n which_o be_v visible_o found_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o put_v on_o foot_n by_o they_o and_o they_o can_v perish_v or_o vanish_v away_o to_o give_v place_n to_o another_o and_o these_o be_v the_o principal_a point_n of_o this_o second_o part_n discuss_v in_o the_o chapter_n follow_v
though_o first_o before_o we_o enter_v into_o this_o examination_n we_o have_v think_v good_a to_o treat_v certain_a general_a point_n that_o make_v way_n thereunto_o as_o by_o the_o next_o chapter_n you_o shall_v perceive_v chap._n i._n of_o how_o to_o great_a importance_n ecclesiastical_a succession_n be_v for_o trial_n of_o true_a religion_n and_o how_o sectary_n have_v seek_v to_o fly_v the_o force_n thereof_o by_o say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v invisible_a how_o fond_a a_o shift_n this_o be_v and_o how_o foolish_o john_n fox_n do_v behave_v himself_o therein_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o philosopher_n be_v know_v to_o all_o that_o contrary_n be_v lay_v together_o do_v give_v light_v the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o as_o white_a and_o black_a propose_v in_o one_o table_n do_v make_v each_o colour_n more_o clear_a distinct_a and_o lively_a in_o itself_o for_o which_o respect_n we_o have_v lay_v open_o before_o in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o discourse_n the_o know_v manifest_a succession_n of_o christian_a religion_n in_o our_o isle_n of_o england_n first_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n among_o the_o britan_n for_o the_o first_o six_o age_n after_o christ_n and_o then_o again_o among_o the_o englishman_n for_o nine_o age_n more_o since_o their_o first_o conversion_n from_o paganism_n we_o be_v now_o to_o examine_v what_o manner_n of_o visible_a succession_n john_n fox_n do_v bring_v we_o forth_o of_o his_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o protestant_n of_o his_o religion_n for_o the_o say_v 1500_o year_n or_o fifteen_o age_n if_o any_o such_o be_v for_o that_o by_o this_o comparison_n of_o the_o one_o with_o the_o other_o the_o nature_n and_o condition_n of_o both_o church_n will_v be_v understand_v but_o yet_o first_o i_o mean_v to_o note_v by_o the_o way_n certain_a principal_a point_n to_o be_v consider_v for_o better_a understanding_n of_o all_o that_o be_v to_o be_v handle_v in_o this_o chapter_n or_o about_o this_o whole_a matter_n of_o ecclesiastical_a succession_n 2._o whereof_o the_o first_o may_v be_v that_o which_o i_o have_v touch_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o former_a chapter_n to_o wit_n of_o how_o great_a importance_n this_o point_n be_v succession_n i_o mean_v the_o succession_n and_o continuation_n of_o teacher_n the_o one_o conform_v to_o the_o other_o in_o matter_n of_o belief_n and_o religion_n for_o clear_a demonstration_n of_o truth_n in_o matter_n of_o controversy_n and_o for_o stay_v any_o discreet_a man_n judgement_n from_o waver_v hither_o and_o thither_o in_o his_o belief_n according_a to_o that_o which_o holy_a st._n augustin_n say_v of_o himself_o and_o feel_v in_o himself_o for_o that_o consider_v the_o great_a diversity_n of_o sect_n that_o swarm_v in_o his_o time_n and_o every_o one_o pretend_v truth_n antiquity_n purity_n and_o authority_n of_o scripture_n and_o himself_o also_o have_v be_v mislead_v by_o one_o of_o these_o sect_n for_o many_o year_n be_v bring_v by_o god_n at_o length_n to_o be_v a_o true_a catholic_a and_o to_o feel_v in_o himself_o the_o force_n of_o this_o visible_a succession_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o therefore_o write_v against_o one_o that_o in_o time_n past_o have_v be_v his_o master_n as_o head_n of_o the_o former_a sect_n wherein_o he_o have_v live_v to_o wit_n faustus_n manichaeus_n succession_n after_o divers_a other_o reason_n allege_v of_o his_o confidence_n and_o assurance_n of_o truth_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o of_o his_o firm_a resolution_n to_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o same_o he_o bring_v for_o his_o last_o and_o strong_a reason_n the_o perpetual_a succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o same_o church_n and_o especial_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 6._o tenet_n i_o in_o ecclesia_fw-la say_v he_o ab_fw-la ipsa_fw-la petri_n sede_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la praesentem_fw-la episcopatum_fw-la successio_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o be_o hold_v in_o this_o church_n against_o all_o you_o sectary_n by_o the_o succession_n of_o priest_n and_o bishop_n that_o have_v come_v down_o even_o from_o the_o first_o seat_n of_o st._n peter_n the_o apostle_n to_o the_o present_a bishop_n of_o rome_n anastasius_n that_o hold_v the_o seat_n at_o this_o day_n etc._n etc._n 3._o lo_o here_o the_o force_n and_o estimation_n of_o succession_n with_o st._n augustin_n whereunto_o be_v conform_v all_o other_o ancient_a father_n if_o we_o will_v stand_v to_o allege_v they_o yea_o they_o stand_v so_o firm_o upon_o this_o point_n and_o do_v make_v so_o great_a account_n of_o it_o as_o they_o do_v general_o note_v heretic_n and_o sectary_n for_o the_o contrary_a defect_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o have_v no_o succession_n or_o orderly_a continuation_n either_o of_o bishop_n or_o of_o faith_n among_o they_o but_o do_v leap_v hither_o and_o thither_o as_o we_o do_v at_o this_o day_n challenge_v to_o themselves_o now_o this_o and_o now_o that_o without_o either_o order_n interest_n continuation_n or_o succession_n test_n ordinem_fw-la say_v st._n augustin_n ab_fw-la apostolo_n petro_n coeptum_fw-la &_o usque_fw-la ad_fw-la hoc_fw-la tempus_fw-la per_fw-la traducem_fw-la succedentium_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la servatum_fw-la perturbant_fw-la ordinem_fw-la sibi_fw-la sine_fw-la origine_fw-la vendicantes_fw-la heretic_n do_v trouble_v and_o break_v the_o order_n of_o succeed_v of_o bishop_n begin_v by_o st._n peter_n and_o bring_v down_o by_o off_o spring_n one_o bishop_n succeed_v another_o and_o so_o challenge_v unto_o themselves_o a_o certain_a order_n without_o beginning_n 4._o to_o which_o effect_n also_o tertullian_n more_o than_o 200_o year_n before_o st._n augustin_n challenge_v heretic_n to_o this_o combat_n of_o succession_n say_v haeres_fw-la edant_fw-la haeretici_fw-la origines_fw-la suarum_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la evolvant_fw-la ordinem_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la suorum_fw-la etc._n etc._n let_v heretic_n set_v forth_o the_o beginning_n of_o their_o church_n let_v they_o recount_v the_o order_n of_o their_o succeed_a bishop_n if_o they_o can_v and_o then_o have_v set_v down_o for_o his_o part_n and_o for_o proof_n of_o true_a catholic_a succession_n the_o whole_a rank_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n from_o st._n peter_n to_o pope_n eleutherius_fw-la that_o live_v in_o his_o day_n mark_n i_o pray_v you_o the_o proof_n he_o use_v though_o he_o be_v of_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n he_o glori_v as_o though_o he_o bring_v forth_o a_o invincible_a argument_n against_o all_o heretic_n challenge_v and_o provoke_v they_o to_o do_v the_o like_a if_o they_o can_v ibid._n consingant_fw-la say_v he_o tale_n aliquid_fw-la haeretici_fw-la let_v heretic_n bring_v forth_o or_o devise_v any_o such_o thing_n for_o proof_n of_o their_o church_n if_o they_o can_v and_o consider_v here_o gentle_a reader_n how_o heretic_n remain_v confound_v by_o tertullian_n judgement_n for_o want_n of_o succession_n 4._o 5._o but_o this_o be_v not_o only_a tertullian_n opinion_n for_o st._n irenaeus_n before_o he_o again_o object_v the_o same_o to_o heretic_n against_o who_o he_o write_v say_v obedire_fw-la oportet_fw-la eye_n qui_fw-la successionem_fw-la habent_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n qui_fw-la cum_fw-la episcopatus_fw-la successione_n charismata_fw-la veritatis_fw-la acceperunt_fw-la you_o ought_v to_o obey_v these_o who_o have_v their_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n who_o together_o with_o the_o succession_n of_o their_o bishopric_n have_v receive_v from_o time_n to_o time_n the_o gift_n or_o privilege_n of_o truth_n and_o in_o another_o place_n 45._o apud_fw-la quas_fw-la est_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la est_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n successio_fw-la hi_o fidem_fw-la nostram_fw-la custodiunt_fw-la &_o scripturas_fw-la sine_fw-la periculo_fw-la nobis_fw-la exponunt_fw-la with_o who_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n downward_o be_v find_v to_o have_v remain_v these_o be_v they_o who_o conserve_v our_o faith_n and_o do_v expound_v the_o scripture_n unto_o we_o without_o danger_n behold_v the_o virtue_n of_o succession_n which_o this_o bless_a bishop_n and_o martyr_n st._n irenaeus_n esteem_v so_o high_o in_o his_o day_n as_o he_o ascribe_v thereto_o both_o the_o infallible_a conservation_n of_o faith_n and_o true_a exposition_n of_o scripture_n 6._o and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o he_o speak_v not_o only_o of_o succession_n in_o belief_n as_o every_o one_o of_o our_o sectary_n will_v seem_v to_o pretend_v that_o they_o have_v it_o among_o themselves_o from_o the_o apostle_n which_o yet_o be_v ridiculous_a and_o manifest_o false_a as_o before_o have_v be_v declare_v and_o after_o shall_v be_v more_o in_o particular_a but_o he_o speak_v express_o also_o of_o the_o external_a succession_n and_o continuation_n of_o bishop_n ascribe_v to_o they_o and_o prove_v by_o they_o the_o succession_n of_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_a faith_n father_n and_o to_o that_o end_n do_v he_o number_v up_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n from_o st._n peter_n to_o his_o time_n as_o tertullian_n before-alledged_n do_v notwithstanding_o the_o one_o live_v in_o france_n and_o the_o other_o in_o africa_n prove_v
catholic_a church_n have_v all_o truth_n in_o it_o that_o be_v reveal_v by_o christ_n and_o not_o some_o spark_n only_o as_o fox_n require_v in_o his_o church_n and_o that_o it_o have_v continual_a succession_n of_o multitude_n of_o true_a teacher_n without_o interruption_n and_o not_o one_o start_v up_o in_o one_o age_n and_o another_o in_o another_o wherewith_o fox_n seem_v to_o be_v content_v for_o the_o continuation_n of_o his_o church_n fox_n 25._o and_o final_o if_o fox_n come_v at_o length_n to_o be_v ashamed_a of_o his_o former_a definition_n of_o a_o obscure_a and_o trodden-down_a church_n and_o of_o the_o sparkle_v doctrine_n of_o truth_n therein_o teach_v shall_v leave_v the_o same_o and_o offer_v to_o lay_v hand_n on_o the_o great_a illustrious_a and_o visible_a church_n of_o the_o first_o 300_o year_n say_v that_o this_o be_v he_o which_o yet_o you_o have_v see_v by_o many_o argument_n demonstrate_v that_o it_o can_v be_v i_o shall_v be_v content_a to_o admit_v so_o ridiculous_a a_o pretence_n for_o a_o time_n with_o condition_n that_o he_o will_v stand_v to_o it_o and_o go_v forward_o with_o this_o church_n in_o the_o sequent_a age_n and_o not_o to_o disclaim_v from_o she_o to_o his_o hide_a church_n again_o which_o if_o he_o yield_v unto_o then_o have_v we_o now_o a_o visible_a and_o eminent_a true_a church_n on_o foot_n by_o confession_n of_o both_o party_n which_o we_o must_v follow_v to_o the_o world_n end_n for_o that_o she_o can_v perish_v again_o 8._o as_o before_o we_o have_v declare_v for_o which_o cause_n i_o be_o to_o prosecute_v the_o same_o from_o age_n to_o age_n in_o this_o treatise_n from_o this_o time_n downward_o to_o our_o day_n in_o the_o chapter_n that_o do_v ensue_v where_o we_o shall_v see_v who_o stick_v to_o she_o and_o who_o fly_v from_o she_o who_o follow_v she_o constant_o or_o who_o give_v the_o slip_n for_o that_o she_o be_v now_o once_o so_o potent_a notorious_a and_o illustrious_a as_o both_o part_n do_v confess_v if_o he_o will_v stand_v to_o it_o in_o earnest_n that_o she_o be_v his_o church_n also_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o she_o shall_v be_v lose_v shrink_v or_o fade_v away_o again_o but_o that_o all_o the_o world_n must_v see_v it_o how_o where_o when_o and_o by_o who_o so_o great_a a_o accident_n shall_v fall_v out_o neither_o can_v fox_n and_o his_o people_n be_v now_o once_o in_o she_o and_o of_o she_o by_o his_o own_o pretence_n be_v find_v out_o of_o she_o afterward_o but_o only_o by_o apostasy_n or_o heresy_n and_o run_v away_o this_o than_o let_v we_o examine_v in_o the_o age_n follow_v chap._n iii_o the_o prosecution_n of_o the_o same_o matter_n to_o wit_n of_o the_o descent_n of_o the_o catholic_a and_o protestant_a church_n for_o other_o three_o hundred_o year_n that_o be_v from_o pope_n sylvester_n and_o constantine_n to_o pope_n gregory_n and_o mauritius_n the_o emperor_n and_o where_o john_n fox_n his_o church_n lie_v hide_v in_o this_o time_n and_o thus_o have_v run_v over_o the_o first_o three_o age_n after_o christ_n we_o must_v now_o pass_v to_o the_o second_o station_n which_o be_v for_o other_o 300_o year_n begin_v from_o constantine_n the_o emperor_n downward_o unto_o the_o time_n of_o st._n gregory_n under_o who_o st._n augustin_n come_v into_o england_n in_o which_o space_n of_o time_n the_o catholic_n christian_n church_n spread_v over_o all_o the_o world_n as_o before_o you_o have_v hear_v do_v grow_v and_o confirm_v itself_o powerful_o especial_o after_o persecution_n do_v cease_v as_o by_o all_o story_n appear_v have_v have_v thirty-two_a pope_n between_o sylvester_n and_o gregory_n whereof_o thirty_o be_v hold_v for_o great_a saint_n and_o three_o or_o four_o be_v martyr_n 2._o the_o father_n and_o doctor_n also_o of_o these_o three_o age_n be_v most_o excellent_a man_n both_o grecian_n and_o latin_n and_o it_o seem_v that_o what_o want_v in_o these_o three_o age_n from_o the_o former_a three_o in_o the_o glory_n of_o martyrdom_n it_o be_v supply_v by_o the_o excellency_n of_o learning_n as_o for_o example_n in_o the_o four_o age_n after_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o first_o of_o the_o second_o three_o do_v flourish_v eusebius_n lactantius_n christ_n rheticius_n juvencus_n athanasius_n hilarius_n optatus_n climacus_n basil_n nazianzenus_n ambrose_n prudentius_n hierom_n chrysostom_n epiphanius_n cyril_n and_o divers_a other_o in_o rhe_n five_o age_n st._n augustin_n possidonius_fw-la sulpitius_n orosius_n cassianus_n prosper_n vincentius_n lyrinensis_n falgentius_n and_o many_o more_o and_o in_o the_o six_o age_n cassiodorus_n emisenus_n procopius_n fortunatus_n venantius_n evagrius_n gregorius_n turonensis_n and_o gregory_n the_o great_a all_o which_o fill_v the_o world_n with_o their_o excellent_a book_n both_o greek_a and_o latin_a beside_o many_o general_n national_a and_o provincial_a council_n whereof_o five_o be_v universal_a the_o first_o of_o nice_a the_o second_o of_o constantinople_n the_o three_o of_o ephesus_n the_o four_o of_o chalcedon_n wherein_o there_o be_v 630_o bishop_n and_o the_o five_o be_v of_o constantinople_n the_o second_o time_n but_o of_o provincial_n and_o national_a council_n there_o be_v receive_v to_o the_o number_n of_o almost_o seventy_o to_o have_v be_v hold_v in_o this_o time_n 3._o by_o all_o which_o concourse_n of_o testimony_n the_o force_n and_o unity_n of_o catholic_a faith_n be_v show_v to_o wit_n that_o these_o father_n doctor_n pope_n year_n and_o council_n agree_v together_o all_o throughout_o the_o world_n in_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_a faith_n and_o religion_n and_o continue_v the_o same_o from_o age_n to_o age_n with_o so_o great_a authority_n of_o respect_n and_o majesty_n as_o not_o only_o all_o ecclesiastical_a person_n of_o what_o nation_n soever_o and_o other_o christian_a people_n but_o all_o temporal_a prince_n king_n and_o emperor_n in_o like_a manner_n except_o such_o as_o be_v note_v with_o any_o particular_a heresy_n as_o some_o emperor_n of_o the_o east_n do_v whole_o submit_v themselves_o with_o one_o consent_n whereby_o this_o visible_a illustrious_a roman_a church_n be_v make_v so_o great_a and_o universal_a notorious_a and_o know_v embrace_v all_o christendom_n as_o it_o be_v whole_o impossible_a for_o john_n fox_n to_o find_v out_o any_o creep_a hide_a church_n bear_v the_o name_n of_o christian_a in_o these_o three_o age_n and_o yet_o different_a from_o this_o visible_a and_o splendent_a church_n of_o rome_n which_o he_o call_v the_o devil_n chapel_n and_o much_o more_o hard_a will_v it_o be_v for_o he_o to_o find_v out_o this_o in_o these_o latter_a three_o hundred_o year_n than_o in_o the_o former_a for_o that_o the_o external_a glory_n of_o this_o church_n be_v increase_v much_o more_o in_o these_o three_o age_n than_o in_o the_o first_o three_o before_o treat_v of_o which_o pass_v all_o in_o persecution_n christ_n 4._o the_o heresy_n also_o and_o sect_n of_o this_o time_n be_v above_o fifty_o in_o number_n be_v beat_v down_o more_o strong_o by_o the_o foresay_a father_n bishop_n and_o council_n than_o before_o by_o reason_n they_o have_v more_o time_n and_o leisure_n from_o persecution_n to_o attend_v unto_o they_o than_o have_v those_o of_o the_o former_a three_o age_n the_o principal_a heresy_n of_o this_o four_o age_n be_v meletian_o donatist_n arian_n novatian_o macedonian_n luciferian_o aërian_o eunomian_o apollinarian_o aetian_o priscillianist_n jovinians_n vigilantian_o collyridians_n helvidian_n antimarians_n and_o other_o the_o like_a and_o in_o the_o five_o age_n be_v pelagian_n nestorian_n eutychian_o and_o other_o such_o rabble_n and_o in_o the_o six_o age_n severian_n monothelites_n chrystolytes_n agnoite_n sadducee_n theopaschites_n and_o the_o like_a out_o of_o which_o synagogue_n and_o congregation_n of_o wrangle_a spirit_n which_o succeed_v one_o another_o in_o divers_a time_n place_n and_o country_n and_o oppose_v themselves_o malicious_o out_o of_o their_o obscure_a corner_n against_o the_o shine_a light_n of_o the_o foresay_a catholic_a church_n if_o john_n fox_n will_v frame_v his_o poor_a and_o beggarly_a church_n which_o yet_o he_o hold_v for_o the_o only_a true_a church_n of_o god_n oppress_v and_o tread_v down_o as_o he_o say_v and_o almost_o scarce_o visible_a to_o worldly_a eye_n 9_o he_o may_v do_v it_o with_o great_a probability_n for_o that_o these_o fellow_n be_v neglect_v and_o tread_v down_o indeed_o by_o the_o other_o opposite_a roman_a church_n and_o yet_o do_v they_o as_o john_n fox_n require_v for_o the_o succession_n of_o his_o church_n continue_v and_o rise_v up_o from_o time_n to_o time_n though_o by_o no_o orderly_a succession_n of_o bishop_n or_o doctrine_n as_o have_v be_v say_v yea_o they_o have_v that_o other_o quality_n also_o proper_a to_o john_n fox_n his_o church_n that_o they_o always_o keep_v some_o spark_n of_o true_a doctrine_n and_o religion_n together_o with_o their_o heresy_n so_o as_o in_o this_o
year_n next_o before_o the_o entrance_n of_o st._n augustin_n be_v for_o he_o and_o his_o church_n and_o not_o for_o we_o yea_o different_a from_o the_o roman_a religion_n bring_v in_o by_o augustin_n 10._o as_o often_o you_o have_v hear_v he_o protest_v and_o here_o have_v be_v the_o proper_a place_n to_o have_v prove_v it_o if_o it_o have_v be_v provable_a and_o whereas_o in_o the_o same_o protestation_n of_o he_o prefix_v before_o his_o whole_a volume_n he_o avouch_v as_o you_o have_v hear_v that_o the_o chief_a british_a preacher_n and_o teacher_n of_o these_o time_n before_o st._n augustin_n come_n as_o fastidius_n ninianus_n patricius_n 5._o dubritius_fw-la congellus_fw-la david_n asaphus_n gildas_n and_o other_o before_o mention_v be_v true_a teacher_n and_o teach_v the_o gospel_n right_o according_a to_o the_o protestant_a faith_n and_o consequent_o be_v of_o his_o religion_n he_o ought_v here_o to_o have_v prove_v the_o same_o by_o their_o write_n life_n act_n and_o monument_n as_o i_o have_v show_v the_o contrary_a by_o all_o these_o kind_n of_o argument_n and_o proof_n before_o but_o the_o fox_n know_v the_o difficulty_n and_o peril_n of_o this_o combat_n will_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o same_o nor_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o defend_v or_o justify_v any_o thing_n at_o all_o though_o never_o so_o much_o promise_v or_o protest_v in_o his_o preface_n and_o preamble_n at_o the_o beginning_n whereof_o the_o reason_n be_v these_o that_o ensue_v 11._o first_o for_o that_o touch_v the_o british_a church_n during_o these_o three_o age_n he_o have_v in_o truth_n nothing_o at_o all_o to_o write_v or_o relate_v but_o what_o will_v be_v manifest_o against_o himself_o if_o he_o have_v write_v or_o relate_v it_o and_o descend_v to_o particular_n for_o according_a to_o that_o you_o have_v hear_v before_o in_o divers_a place_n of_o this_o treatise_n that_o as_o the_o first_o faith_n of_o the_o britan_n come_v from_o rome_n and_o thereby_o they_o be_v make_v member_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n from_o the_o beginning_n so_o remain_v they_o unite_v with_o the_o same_o in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n except_o some_o few_o abuse_n creep_v in_o among_o part_n of_o they_o towards_o the_o latter-end_n of_o these_o three_o age_n until_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o english_a by_o st._n augustin_n to_o the_o same_o roman_n faith._n which_o point_n be_v prove_v so_o evident_o by_o so_o many_o sign_n age_n argument_n and_o demonstration_n as_o little_a comfort_n may_v john_n fox_n have_v to_o enter_v into_o this_o discourse_n or_o examination_n and_o consequent_o though_o he_o have_v promise_v in_o the_o beginning_n to_o treat_v this_o subject_a of_o the_o british_a church_n yet_o come_v to_o the_o place_n and_o time_n when_o he_o shall_v have_v perform_v his_o promise_n he_o think_v better_a to_o withdraw_v himself_o slight_o by_o utter_a silence_n than_o to_o put_v himself_o in_o briar_n by_o make_v any_o mention_n at_o all_o thereof_o and_o thus_o much_o for_o his_o silence_n concern_v the_o christian_a church_n of_o britanny_n in_o these_o three_o age_n 12._o but_o for_o the_o general_a catholic_a church_n of_o christendom_n though_o these_o time_n yield_v abundant_a matter_n as_o have_v be_v say_v yet_o the_o whole_a stream_n and_o current_n thereof_o run_v quite_o against_o he_o he_o think_v best_o in_o like_a manner_n to_o decline_v crafty_o the_o meddle_v or_o wrestle_v therewith_o and_o so_o much_o the_o more_o for_o that_o he_o have_v see_v the_o pitiful_a plight_n wherein_o his_o master_n the_o magdeburgian_o have_v cast_v themselves_o in_o their_o four_o five_o and_o six_o century_n by_o over-large_a relate_v the_o act_n and_o gest_n of_o these_o three_o age_n against_o themselves_o and_o their_o own_o religion_n be_v force_v to_o spend_v a_o great_a part_n of_o their_o labour_n not_o so_o much_o in_o relate_v what_o the_o father_n of_o those_o age_n write_v or_o hold_v as_o to_o answer_v and_o refute_v the_o same_o and_o show_v that_o it_o be_v not_o true_a nor_o the_o say_a doctor_n and_o father_n to_o be_v believe_v therein_o which_o trouble_n john_n fox_n like_o a_o wily_a fox_n indeed_o think_v best_o to_o avoid_v by_o art_n of_o silence_n i_o will_v in_o this_o place_n for_o example_n sake_n only_o and_o to_o give_v you_o a_o taste_n of_o the_o say_v magdeburgian_o deal_v throughout_o their_o whole_a work_n from_o which_o john_n fox_n take_v the_o principal_a part_n of_o his_o let_v you_o see_v some_o point_n take_v out_o of_o their_o four_o century_n dedicate_v to_o her_o majesty_n of_o england_n with_o a_o sharp_a invective_n as_o before_o have_v be_v show_v use_v by_o they_o against_o the_o calvinist_n therein_o which_o century_n contain_v the_o four_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n 6._o and_o the_o first_o of_o the_o three_o which_o now_o we_o have_v in_o hand_n from_o constantine_n downward_o wherein_o they_o spend_v above_o 400_o leave_n in_o folio_n and_o more_o than_o twice_o as_o much_o in_o the_o other_o two_o century_n that_o ensue_v john_n fox_n not_o have_v bestow_v four_o leave_n upon_o all_o three_o age_n as_o you_o have_v hear_v 13._o and_o that_o you_o may_v perceive_v how_o this_o one_o century_n of_o the_o magdeburgians_n come_v to_o make_v so_o great_a a_o volume_n you_o must_v note_v that_o it_o be_v divide_v into_o certain_a large_a chapter_n or_o head_n of_o different_a matter_n as_o for_o example_n first_o century_n of_o the_o propagation_n of_o christian_a religion_n in_o that_o age_n and_o the_o state_n thereof_o throughout_o all_o country_n kingdom_n and_o nation_n which_o be_v a_o large_a matter_n as_o you_o see_v comprehend_v the_o story_n of_o all_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n second_o of_o persecution_n trouble_n and_o jar_n that_o have_v pass_v as_o also_o of_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n then_o of_o doctrine_n good_a or_o bad_a then_o of_o heresy_n then_o of_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n then_o of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n then_o of_o schism_n then_o of_o synod_n and_o council_n then_o of_o bishop_n doctor_n and_o teacher_n their_o life_n work_n and_o action_n at_o large_a then_o of_o heretic_n their_o beginning_n and_o end_n then_o of_o martyr_n then_o of_o miracle_n then_o of_o pagan_a commonwealth_n also_o and_o other_o such_o point_n capable_a as_o you_o see_v of_o long_a discourse_n which_o i_o think_v fit_a once_o to_o note_n to_o the_o end_n that_o those_o which_o have_v not_o read_v the_o century_n may_v know_v in_o general_n what_o matter_n they_o handle_v and_o what_o method_n they_o use_v therein_o 14._o second_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v about_o the_o same_o affair_n that_o in_o all_o these_o head_n and_o chapter_n there_o be_v divers_a thing_n which_o be_v not_o in_o controversy_n among_o we_o i_o mean_v between_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n but_o be_v common_a to_o we_o both_o at_o least_o in_o some_o degree_n other_o point_n there_o be_v that_o they_o affirm_v and_o we_o deny_v or_o we_o affirm_v and_o they_o deny_v there_o be_v a_o three_o kind_n also_o of_o point_n wherein_o though_o we_o and_o protestant_n do_v not_o agree_v full_o either_o in_o the_o doctrine_n or_o in_o the_o practice_n yet_o one_o sect_n of_o they_o differ_v more_o or_o less_o from_o we_o than_o the_o other_o and_o in_o all_o these_o three_o point_n you_o shall_v see_v some_o brief_a example_n of_o the_o magdeburgian_o manner_n of_o proceed_v in_o this_o four_o age_n note_v to_o you_o first_o by_o the_o way_n their_o own_o testimony_n of_o the_o excellent_a learning_n of_o the_o doctor_n and_o teacher_n thereof_o in_o these_o word_n habuit_fw-la haec_fw-la aet_fw-la as_o si_fw-la quae_fw-la unquam_fw-la alia_fw-la magdeburg_n plurimos_fw-la praestantes_fw-la &_o illustres_fw-la doctores_fw-la ut_fw-la arnobium_fw-la lactantium_fw-la etc._n etc._n this_o age_n if_o ever_o any_o other_o have_v very_o many_o most_o excellent_a and_o famous_a doctor_n as_o arnobius_n lactantius_n eusebius_n athanasius_n hilarius_n victorinus_n basilius_n nazianzenus_n ambrose_n prudentius_n epiphanius_n theophilus_n hieronymus_n faustinus_n didymus_n ephrem_n optatus_n and_o other_o out_o of_o which_o we_o shall_v show_v and_o declare_v what_o be_v the_o form_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n use_v in_o this_o age._n 15._o lo_o there_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o magdeburgian_o of_o the_o famous_a doctor_n teacher_n and_o leader_n of_o christ_n church_n in_o this_o age_n and_o be_v such_o as_o they_o say_v so_o excellent_o learned_a and_o endue_v with_o christ_n spirit_n for_o guide_v of_o his_o church_n be_v it_o probable_a think_v you_o that_o these_o four_o german_a magdeburgian_o illyricus_n wigandus_n judex_n and_o faber_n shall_v come_v to_o presume_v afterward_o to_o condemn_v they_o all_o of_o ignorance_n and_o lack_n of_o spirit_n when_o they_o speak_v against_o they_o true_o they_o can_v do_v it_o with_o any_o shame_n fac'dness_n or_o modesty_n at_o all_o or_o be_v believe_v
throughout_o the_o world_n for_o christ_n church_n be_v wicked_a and_o rebellious_a unto_o god_n and_o act_n of_o the_o devil_n synagogue_n from_o the_o time_n that_o john_n fox_n assign_v of_o her_o fall_n and_o apostasy_n and_o that_o on_o the_o contrary_a side_n all_o the_o write_n action_n and_o gest_n of_o all_o sort_n of_o heretic_n against_o this_o church_n from_o that_o time_n book_n be_v the_o act_n and_o monument_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n suppose_v all_o this_o i_o say_v as_o fox_n do_v there_o can_v want_v matter_n either_o on_o the_o one_o side_n or_o the_o other_o to_o fill_v up_o volume_n and_o the_o low_a he_o pass_v downward_o the_o more_o matter_n he_o find_v for_o that_o sect_n and_o sectary_n increase_v daily_o who_o he_o register_v for_o saint_n and_o pillar_n of_o his_o church_n the_o volume_n of_o his_o book_n must_v needs_o grow_v great_o and_o so_o be_v it_o see_v by_o this_o four_o book_n wherein_o from_o the_o conquest_n to_o the_o latter-end_n of_o king_n edward_n iii_n reign_n when_o wickliff_n begin_v contain_v 300_o year_n to_o wit_n from_o anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 1066_o to_o 1370_o there_o be_v spend_v above_o 100_o leave_n of_o paper_n which_o be_v much_o more_o than_o be_v in_o the_o former_a 1066_o year_n but_o in_o the_o five_o book_n from_o john_n wickliff_n time_n to_o king_n henry_n viii_o which_o be_v but_o 140_o year_n be_v contain_v upon_o the_o point_n of_o 200_o leave_n and_o then_o again_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o king_n henry_n reign_n to_o the_o entrance_n of_o q._n elizabeth_n be_v but_o fifty_o year_n he_o spend_v above_o 600_o leave_n and_o by_o this_o you_o may_v judge_v both_o of_o the_o subject_a and_o substance_n of_o john_n fox_n huge_a volume_n though_o we_o be_v to_o look_v into_o the_o same_o somewhat_o more_o particular_o also_o as_o we_o pass_v it_o over_o in_o this_o and_o the_o ensue_a chapter_n 3._o well_o then_o this_o be_v his_o device_n and_o resolution_n for_o the_o present_a to_o have_v no_o long_o patience_n with_o our_o church_n but_o whole_o to_o deny_v the_o same_o his_o great_a difficulty_n seem_v to_o be_v about_o the_o time_n and_o cause_n to_o wit_n where_o or_o when_o or_o how_o or_o upon_o what_o occasion_n she_o perish_v or_o vanish_v away_o for_o see_v she_o have_v continue_v by_o his_o confession_n also_o for_o so_o many_o year_n and_o age_n and_o come_v down_o unto_o our_o day_n under_o the_o selfsame_a succession_n of_o bishop_n pastor_n and_o teacher_n as_o before_o and_o consequent_o also_o with_o the_o selfsame_a doctrine_n and_o religion_n and_o with_o the_o same_o external_a power_n and_o majesty_n which_o it_o be_v wont_a it_o seem_v a_o very_a hard_a thing_n upon_o the_o sudden_a either_o to_o annihilate_v so_o great_a and_o mighty_a a_o kingdom_n church_n or_o which_o be_v much_o more_o difficult_a to_o make_v so_o strange_a a_o metamorphosis_n and_o mutation_n in_o she_o as_o that_o she_o have_v be_v hitherto_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n his_o spouse_n his_o kingdom_n his_o dear_a belove_a and_o beautify_v with_o his_o grace_n direct_v by_o his_o spirit_n enrich_v with_o his_o most_o precious_a gift_n and_o endowment_n and_o so_o acknowledge_v also_o by_o fox_n fox_n himself_n in_o former_a age_n that_o now_o she_o shall_v become_v christ_n enemy_n and_o adversary_n upon_o the_o sudden_a and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o satan_n his_o eternal_a foe_n and_o yet_o to_o retain_v still_o the_o name_n place_n estimation_n and_o external_a dignity_n which_o she_o have_v before_o profess_v with_o no_o less_o show_n of_o duty_n her_o obedience_n and_o love_n to_o christ_n than_o in_o former_a time_n she_o be_v wont_a mutation_n this_o change_n and_o metamorphosis_n i_o say_v be_v most_o wonderful_a and_o incredible_a to_o all_o those_o that_o believe_v christ_n to_o be_v god_n and_o to_o have_v be_v able_a to_o perform_v his_o promise_n that_o hell-gate_n shall_v never_o prevail_v against_o this_o church_n wherefore_o we_o be_v to_o examine_v somewhat_o more_o diligent_o in_o this_o chapter_n how_o this_o matter_n can_v fall_v out_o and_o when_o and_o by_o what_o occasion_n come_v to_o pass_v for_o that_o so_o great_a and_o rare_a a_o mutation_n as_o this_o be_v never_o fall_v out_o yet_o in_o the_o world_n before_o though_o temporal_a state_n and_o kingdom_n have_v have_v their_o change_n nay_o all_o temporal_a mutation_n of_o empire_n kingdom_n state_n and_o monarchy_n have_v be_v make_v principal_o to_o show_v the_o contrary_a stability_n and_o immutable_a continuation_n of_o christ_n church_n once_o plant_v in_o the_o world_n as_o in_o part_n we_o have_v declare_v cap._n before_o show_v how_o that_o in_o all_o time_n and_o season_n in_o all_o variety_n and_o variation_n of_o state_n people_z country_n and_o dominion_n as_o well_o in_o england_n as_o elsewhere_o the_o christian_a catholic_a religion_n remain_v one_o and_o the_o same_o among_o they_o all_o to_o which_o effect_n also_o be_v that_o notable_a prophecy_n of_o daniel_n 2.44_o when_o foretell_v first_o the_o break_n and_o overthrow_n of_o all_o four_o monarchy_n by_o he_o mention_v he_o add_v as_o a_o notorious_a opposition_n to_o the_o same_o the_o stability_n and_o immortality_n of_o christ_n church_n and_o kingdom_n once_o set_v on_o foot_n in_o these_o word_n church_n in_o the_o day_n of_o these_o kingdom_n god_n of_o heaven_n shall_v raise_v up_o a_o kingdom_n that_o shall_v never_o be_v dissipate_v neither_o shall_v this_o kingdom_n be_v give_v to_o another_o people_n this_o kingdom_n shall_v consume_v and_o wear_v out_o all_o the_o other_o kingdom_n but_o itself_o shall_v stand_v for_o ever_o 4._o thus_o say_v daniel_n and_o the_o most_o of_o these_o point_n we_o have_v see_v verify_v and_o fulfil_v already_o for_o god_n of_o heaven_n have_v raise_v this_o kingdom_n and_o visible_a church_n of_o christ_n which_o then_o seem_v a_o strange_a matter_n he_o have_v increase_v and_o continue_v the_o same_o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o more_o as_o fox_n will_v confess_v which_o be_v a_o long_a time_n than_o any_o temporal_a monarchy_n light_o have_v continue_v without_o change_n he_o have_v overthrow_v in_o this_o time_n and_o consume_v the_o other_o kingdom_n and_o monarchy_n mention_v by_o he_o now_o remain_v the_o other_o two_o clause_n to_o be_v fulfil_v in_o like_a manner_n to_o wit_n that_o it_o shall_v stand_v for_o ever_o or_o as_o christ_n expound_v it_o usque_fw-la and_o consummationem_fw-la saeculi_fw-la to_o to_o the_o world_n end_n and_o then_o quod_fw-la alteri_fw-la populo_fw-la non_fw-la tradetur_fw-la that_o this_o kingdom_n shall_v not_o be_v deliver_v over_o to_o another_o people_n from_o that_o which_o possess_v it_o from_o the_o beginning_n the_o quite_o contrary_a whereof_o teach_v here_o john_n fox_n affirm_v this_o church_n that_o have_v be_v account_v the_o true_a church_n and_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n pass_v be_v now_o no_o more_o his_o church_n or_o kingdom_n nor_o these_o pope_n bishop_n and_o pastor_n that_o be_v find_v in_o she_o to_o have_v come_v down_o by_o continual_a succession_n be_v now_o no_o more_o the_o true_a and_o lawful_a guide_n or_o governor_n thereof_o but_o that_o it_o appertain_v to_o other_o and_o consequent_o this_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v take_v from_o they_o and_o deliver_v to_o another_o people_n to_o wit_n to_o the_o berengarian_o to_o the_o waldenses_n to_o the_o albanenses_n to_o the_o wickliffian_n lutheran_n zwinglians_n and_o other_o like_a people_n of_o latter_a age_n 5._o this_o be_v john_n fox_n his_o mad_a assertion_n wherein_o you_o see_v he_o shall_v prove_v two_o point_n first_o that_o our_o church_n be_v lose_v and_o fall_v and_o our_o man_n right_o dispossess_v of_o the_o interest_n thereof_o and_o then_o that_o his_o man_n to_o wit_n these_o new_a sectary_n have_v enter_v into_o a_o just_a possession_n of_o that_o name_n and_o title_n of_o the_o true_a church_n both_o which_o point_n we_o deny_v you_o shall_v see_v how_o he_o begin_v to_o prove_v the_o first_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o fall_n and_o overthrow_n of_o the_o universal_a visible_a church_n surname_v the_o roman_a and_o thus_o hitherto_o say_v he_o stand_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n england_n mean_v the_o next_o age_n before_o the_o conquest_n albeit_o not_o without_o some_o repugnance_n and_o difficulty_n yet_o in_o some_o mean_a state_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o verity_n till_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n hildebrand_n call_v gregory_n vii_o which_o be_v near_o about_o the_o year_n 1080._o and_o of_o pope_n innocentius_n iii_o in_o the_o year_n 1215._o by_o who_o all_o be_v turn_v upside_o down_o all_o order_n break_v true_a doctrine_n deface_v christian_a faith_n extinguish_v etc._n etc._n 6._o here_o you_o see_v john_n fox_n to_o assign_v two_o time_n and_o two_o pope_n when_o and_o
by_o who_o not_o only_o the_o true_a church_n be_v overthrow_v but_o christian_a faith_n also_o utter_o extinguish_v to_o wit_n gregory_n vii_o and_o innocentius_n iii_o two_o of_o the_o most_o renown_a man_n both_o for_o virtue_n and_o learning_n that_o have_v possess_v that_o see_v since_o the_o time_n of_o our_o conquest_n or_o in_o many_o age_n before_o if_o we_o will_v believe_v all_o the_o ancient_a author_n that_o have_v write_v of_o they_o wherein_o i_o dare_v join_v issue_n with_o fox_n or_o any_o of_o his_o cub_n whatsoever_o that_o will_v defend_v he_o in_o this_o notorious_a slander_n against_o these_o two_o worthy_a man_n for_o as_o for_o innocentius_n iii_o he_o be_v affirm_v to_o have_v be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o excellent_a pope_n for_o good_a life_n and_o rare_a learning_n that_o for_o these_o thousand_o year_n hold_v that_o see._n of_o who_o blondus_n 297._o among_o other_o author_n write_v thus_o suavissimus_fw-la erat_fw-la in_o galliis_fw-la famae_fw-la odor_n gravitatis_fw-la sanctitatis_fw-la ac_fw-la vevum_fw-la gestarum_fw-la ejus_fw-la pontificis_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o fame_n and_o scent_n of_o this_o pope_n gravity_n holiness_n of_o life_n and_o greatness_n of_o his_o action_n be_v most_o sweet_a throughout_o all_o france_n etc._n etc._n and_o for_o his_o learning_n the_o same_o author_n say_v libros_fw-la doctrina_fw-la plenos_fw-la scripsit_fw-la ibid._n he_o write_v most_o learned_a book_n in_o which_o kind_a divers_a author_n do_v report_n that_o he_o write_v more_o than_o most_o of_o the_o other_o pope_n of_o rome_n before_o his_o time_n put_v together_o 7._o and_o as_o for_o gregory_n vii_o albeit_o he_o have_v many_o enemy_n stir_v up_o against_o he_o by_o the_o emperor_n henry_n iu._n and_o other_o who_o he_o seek_v to_o punish_v and_o reform_v for_o their_o misbehavior_n yet_o if_o we_o will_v believe_v the_o chief_a author_n of_o that_o age_n and_o those_o that_o live_v either_o with_o he_o or_o next_o unto_o he_o as_o anselmus_fw-la archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n etc._n marianus_n scotus_n otho_n frisingensis_n aeneas_n silvius_n lambertus_n schafaaburgensis_n vincentius_n gallus_n abbas_n vrspergensis_n aventinus_n sigibertus_n tritemius_fw-la and_o many_o other_o he_o be_v not_o only_o very_o learned_a wise_a and_o a_o man_n of_o great_a courage_n in_o resist_v the_o aforesaid_a most_o dissolute_a emperor_n that_o live_v scandalous_o and_o oppress_v the_o church_n but_o also_o he_o be_v repute_v of_o a_o most_o holy_a life_n insomuch_o as_o god_n wrought_v divers_a miracle_n by_o he_o 8._o the_o very_a form_n of_o his_o election_n record_v by_o platina_n sabellicus_n and_o other_o vii_o do_v show_v what_o he_o be_v when_o they_o say_v elegimus_fw-la hodie_fw-la 21_o maii_n anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 1072_o in_o verum_fw-la christi_fw-la vicarium_fw-la hildebrandum_fw-la archidiaconum_n virum_fw-la multae_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la magnae_fw-la pietatis_fw-la prudentiae_fw-la justitiae_fw-la constantiae_fw-la religionis_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o have_v choose_v this_o day_n the_o 21_o of_o may_v 1072_o for_o true_a vicar_n of_o christ_n a_o man_n of_o much_o learning_n great_a piety_n prudence_n justice_n constancy_n and_o religion_n etc._n etc._n this_o be_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o whole_a clergy_n of_o rome_n that_o know_v he_o better_o than_o john_n fox_n and_o his_o fellow_n against_o who_o lambertus_n schafnaburgensis_n talk_v of_o his_o whole_a life_n afterward_o say_v signa_fw-la &_o prodigia_fw-la quae_fw-la per_fw-la grationes_fw-la gregorii_n papae_fw-la frequentius_fw-la fiebant_fw-la &_o zelus_fw-la ejus_fw-la fervent_a issimus_fw-la pro_fw-la deo_fw-la &_o ecclesiasticis_fw-la legibus_fw-la satis_fw-la eum_fw-la contra_fw-la venenatas_fw-la detractorum_fw-la linguas_fw-la communiebant_fw-la the_o sign_n and_o miracle_n which_o oftentimes_o be_v do_v by_o the_o prayer_n of_o pope_n gregory_n vii_o and_o his_o most_o fervent_a zeal_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o defence_n of_o ecclesiastical_a law_n do_v sufficient_o defend_v he_o against_o the_o venomous_a tongue_n of_o detractor_n 9_o vincentius_n also_o gallus_n in_o his_o history_n relate_v out_o of_o a_o more_o ancient_a historiographer_n than_o himself_o name_v gulielmus_fw-la historicus_fw-la hildebrandum_fw-la dono_fw-la prophetiae_fw-la praeditum_fw-la fuisse_fw-la that_o hildebrand_n the_o pope_n be_v endue_v with_o the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n which_o he_o show_v by_o divers_a particular_a example_n of_o event_n foretell_v by_o he_o and_o this_o of_o gregory_n vii_o iu._n 10._o but_o what_o do_v the_o same_o author_n yea_o germane_a themselves_o write_v of_o their_o emperor_n his_o enemy_n henry_n iv._o sure_o it_o be_v shameful_a to_o report_v his_o adultery_n symoniacal_a sell_v of_o benefice_n robbery_n and_o spoil_v of_o poor_a particular_a man_n thrust_v in_o wicked_a man_n into_o place_n of_o prelate_n and_o the_o like_a principes_fw-la regni_fw-la rogat_fw-la say_v lambertus_n ut_fw-la patiantur_fw-la ipsum_fw-la vxorem_fw-la repudiare_fw-la 1069._o etc._n etc._n he_o do_v request_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o empire_n that_o they_o will_v suffer_v he_o to_o put_v away_o his_o wife_n tell_v they_o what_o the_o pope_n by_o his_o legate_n have_v oppose_v to_o the_o contrary_n which_o be_v hear_v by_o they_o they_o be_v of_o the_o pope_n opinion_n principes_fw-la aiebant_fw-la aequè_fw-la censere_fw-la rom._n pontificem_fw-la ita_fw-la fractus_fw-la magis_fw-la quam_fw-la inflexus_fw-la rex_fw-la ab_fw-la incepto_fw-la abstinuit_fw-la the_o prince_n affirm_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v reason_n to_o determine_v as_o he_o do_v and_o so_o the_o king_n rather_o force_v than_o change_v in_o mind_n abstain_v from_o his_o purpose_a divorce_n 11._o lo_o here_o the_o first_o beginning_n of_o fall_v out_o betwixt_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o pope_n which_o be_v increase_v for_o that_o two_o year_n after_o as_o the_o same_o author_n say_v the_o pope_n deprive_v one_o charles_n for_o simony_n and_o theft_n to_o who_o the_o emperor_n have_v sell_v for_o money_n the_o bishopric_n of_o constance_n and_o this_o he_o do_v by_o a_o council_n of_o prelate_n and_o prince_n hold_v in_o germany_n itself_o the_o emperor_n be_v present_a 1071._o cum_fw-la etiam_fw-la say_v he_o rex_fw-la in_fw-la judicio_fw-la assideret_fw-la causamque_fw-la caroli_n quoad_fw-la posset_n tueretur_fw-la bishop_n charles_n be_v depose_v notwithstanding_o that_o the_o king_n be_v present_a in_o that_o judgement_n and_o defend_v he_o and_o his_o cause_n as_o much_o as_o he_o can_v and_o this_o be_v a_o increase_n of_o the_o fall_v out_o between_o they_o but_o the_o constancy_n say_v the_o same_o author_n and_o invincible_a mind_n of_o hildebrand_n against_o covetousness_n ibid._n do_v exclude_v all_o argument_n of_o human_a deceit_n and_o subtlety_n 1068._o 12._o vrspergensis_n in_o like_a manner_n who_o live_v in_o the_o same_o time_n reckon_v up_o many_o particular_n of_o the_o emperor_n be_v wicked_a behaviour_n in_o these_o word_n coepit_fw-la principes_fw-la despicere_fw-la nobiles_fw-la opprimere_fw-la he_o begin_v to_o despise_v the_o prince_n oppress_v the_o noble_n and_o nobility_n and_o give_v himself_o to_o incontinency_n boiorum_fw-la which_o aventinus_n a_o author_n not_o mislike_v by_o the_o protestant_n utter_v more_o particular_o in_o these_o word_n henricum_fw-la stupris_fw-la amoribus_fw-la impudicitiae_fw-la &_o adulterii_fw-la flagrasse_n infamia_fw-la nec_fw-la amici_fw-la quidem_fw-la negant_fw-la the_o very_a friend_n of_o henry_n the_o emperor_n do_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o he_o be_v infamous_a for_o his_o wicked_a life_n in_o lechery_n fornication_n and_o adultery_n 13._o and_o final_o not_o to_o name_v any_o more_o marianus_n scotus_n that_o live_v in_o those_o day_n write_v thus_o of_o the_o whole_a controversy_n between_o they_o 1075._o gregory_n vii_o say_v he_o be_v stir_v up_o by_o the_o just_a clamour_n of_o catholic_a man_n and_o hear_v the_o immanity_n of_o henry_n the_o emperor_n wickedness_n cry_v out_o against_o by_o they_o do_v excommunicate_v he_o for_o the_o same_o but_o especial_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o simony_n in_o buy_v and_o sell_v bishopric_n which_o fact_n of_o the_o pope_n do_v like_o very_a well_o all_o good_a catholic_a man_n but_o displease_v such_o as_o will_v buy_v and_o sell_v benefice_n and_o be_v favourer_n of_o the_o say_a emperor_n 14._o and_o thus_o much_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o learning_n life_n and_o virtue_n of_o these_o two_o particular_a pope_n gregory_n vii_o and_o innocentius_n iii_o who_o john_n fox_n will_v needs_o have_v we_o believe_v that_o they_o have_v overturn_v god_n church_n and_o extinguish_v christian_a religion_n utter_o in_o the_o world._n but_o especial_o he_o rage_v every_o where_o and_o with_o great_a acerbity_n against_o gregory_n vii_o dilate_v himself_o in_o many_o large_a discourse_n of_o that_o argument_n and_o tell_v so_o many_o and_o apparent_a lie_n of_o he_o and_o his_o act_n and_o end_n as_o be_v a_o matter_n incredible_a to_o he_o that_o have_v not_o examine_v they_o neither_o may_v i_o stand_v to_o recount_v they_o all_o or_o the_o great_a part_n for_o it_o will_v require_v a_o volume_n but_o by_o one_o
variety_n of_o controversy_n and_o not_o know_v what_o to_o resolve_v or_o be_v weary_v with_o labour_n to_o seek_v the_o truth_n do_v incline_v easy_o to_o this_o absurd_a error_n that_o a_o man_n believe_v pious_o in_o jesus_n christ_n crucify_v 1_o or_o as_o sir_n francis_z hastings_z and_o o._n e._n before_o say_v in_o christ_n crucify_v may_v be_v save_v and_o be_v hold_v for_o a_o brother_n so_o he_o be_v against_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n 19_o and_o the_o same_o show_v john_n fox_n that_o he_o believe_v also_o in_o that_o he_o cit_v here_o so_o many_o different_a sect_n and_o sectary_n for_o his_o brethren_n and_o father_n and_o chief_a pillar_n of_o his_o obscure_a and_o trodden-down_a church_n notwithstanding_o they_o differ_v never_o so_o much_o from_o he_o in_o divers_a article_n of_o their_o belief_n as_o shall_v appear_v by_o the_o particular_a examination_n that_o ensue_v for_o albeit_o it_o will_v be_v overlong_a to_o examine_v the_o whole_a catalogue_n before_o set_v down_o yet_o the_o principal_a member_n thereof_o we_o shall_v run_v over_o churchman_n and_o thereby_o let_v you_o see_v what_o truth_n or_o substance_n there_o be_v in_o it_o or_o wisdom_n in_o the_o alleger_n first_o then_o he_o begin_v his_o catalogue_n thus_o 20._o to_o pretermit_v say_v he_o bertramus_n and_o berengarius_fw-la which_o be_v before_o pope_n innocentius_n a_o learned_a multitude_n of_o sufficient_a witness_n may_v be_v produce_v etc._n etc._n it_o be_v well_o he_o pretermit_v these_o two_o which_o be_v both_o against_o he_o flat_o for_o as_o for_o bertramus_n protestant_n he_o be_v whole_o of_o the_o roman_a religion_n and_o so_o live_v and_o die_v nor_o ever_o teach_v he_o any_o one_o point_n of_o protestant_a doctrine_n in_o his_o life_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o tritemius_fw-la and_o other_o that_o write_v of_o he_o 133._o he_o be_v a_o monk_n and_o so_o continue_v to_o his_o dying-day_n which_o be_v above_o 800_o year_n ago_o though_o after_o his_o death_n when_o berengarius_fw-la have_v begin_v his_o heresy_n some_o of_o his_o follower_n do_v forge_v a_o little_a pamphlet_n in_o his_o name_n as_o favour_v the_o berengarian_a heresy_n against_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o the_o fraud_n be_v present_o discover_v and_o reject_v so_o as_o this_o man_n can_v not_o be_v of_o fox_n communion_n hold_v all_o point_n of_o religion_n against_o he_o and_o with_o us._n and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o folly_n and_o falsehood_n of_o our_o fox_n in_o the_o first_o man_n by_o he_o allege_v protestant_n 21._o now_o as_o for_o berengarius_fw-la archdeacon_n of_o tours_n in_o france_n though_o he_o once_o hold_v the_o error_n against_o the_o real_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o do_v he_o oftentimes_o recant_v the_o same_o as_o appear_z by_o his_o berengarius_fw-la abjuration_n which_o fox_n himself_o confess_v and_o in_o all_o other_o point_n be_v a_o perfect_a catholic_a romant_n so_o that_o we_o may_v more_o just_o make_v he_o of_o our_o church_n than_o fox_n of_o he_o if_o we_o will_v take_v any_o such_o break_a ware_n as_o fox_n do_v but_o we_o reject_v all_o that_o be_v not_o complete_a though_o if_o it_o be_v true_a which_o gerson_n and_o many_o other_o do_v write_v that_o berengarius_fw-la die_v very_o penitent_a for_o his_o former_a error_n he_o be_v and_o be_v of_o our_o church_n and_o whether_o he_o do_v or_o not_o he_o can_v be_v of_o fox_n by_o any_o reason_n both_o for_o that_o even_a in_o this_o error_n while_o he_o hold_v it_o he_o be_v far_o different_a both_o from_o calvin_n and_o luther_n and_o in_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o belief_n a_o adversary_n as_o have_v be_v say_v to_o which_o effect_n the_o word_n of_o the_o magdeburgian_o be_v to_o be_v note_v which_o be_v these_o 527._o leo_fw-la ix_o say_v they_o deserve_v in_o this_o one_o thing_n no_o small_a praise_n above_o his_o predecessor_n that_o present_o at_o the_o beginning_n he_o condemn_v the_o heresy_n of_o berengarius_fw-la together_o with_o the_o author_n in_o a_o synod_n at_o rome_n so_o say_v fox_n master_n whereunto_o i_o marvel_v what_o he_o will_v answer_v see_v they_o cast_v away_o that_o which_o he_o so_o earnest_o and_o careful_o gather_v up_o 22._o but_o now_o let_v we_o see_v the_o rest_n of_o his_o rank_n joachim_n protestant_n abbot_n say_v he_o of_o calabria_n almaricus_fw-la a_o learned_a bishop_n etc._n etc._n as_o for_o joachim_n fox_n do_v not_o tell_v we_o what_o he_o hold_v of_o his_o opinion_n to_o make_v he_o of_o his_o church_n nor_o any_o other_o author_n that_o i_o have_v read_v but_o only_o that_o he_o be_v a_o old_a man_n and_o half_a out_o of_o his_o wit_n be_v censure_v by_o the_o pope_n for_o certain_a fond_a prophecy_n and_o some_o error_n also_o about_o the_o bless_a trinity_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o decree_n extant_a in_o the_o canon-law_n against_o he_o and_o by_o other_o author_n that_o have_v write_v of_o he_o haereticorum_fw-la so_o as_o he_o be_v a_o catholic_a man_n in_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o never_o dream_v perhaps_o of_o any_o protestant_a proposition_n in_o his_o life_n fox_n have_v no_o other_o reason_n to_o make_v he_o of_o his_o church_n but_o only_o for_o that_o he_o be_v censure_v in_o something_o by_o the_o pope_n which_o how_o good_a reason_n it_o be_v every_o man_n do_v see_v forasmuch_o as_o every_o malefactor_n condemn_v by_o the_o pope_n shall_v by_o this_o reason_n be_v justify_v 23._o as_o for_o almaricus_fw-la the_o learned_a bishop_n judge_v for_o a_o heretic_n say_v fox_n for_o hold_v against_o image_n in_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n innocentius_n iii_o first_o image_n you_o must_v know_v that_o he_o be_v never_o bishop_n either_o learned_a or_o unlearned_a but_o only_o of_o fox_n make_v for_o that_o his_o high_a degree_n that_o ever_o he_o be_v know_v to_o have_v be_v a_o doctorship_n in_o paris_n he_o be_v bear_v in_o the_o town_n of_o chartres_n as_o testify_v caesarius_n that_o live_v with_o he_o second_o if_o he_o hold_v against_o image_n 5._o as_o fox_n there_o say_v he_o be_v not_o judge_v a_o heretic_n only_o by_o innocentius_n for_o that_o heresy_n but_o he_o &_o all_o other_o of_o that_o opinion_n be_v condemn_v above_o 400_o year_n before_o that_o time_n by_o the_o second_o general_n council_n of_o nice_a three_o the_o truth_n be_v 6._o that_o this_o man_n be_v condemn_v first_o by_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n and_o then_o by_o innocentius_n and_o by_o a_o synod_n in_o rome_n for_o many_o more_o detestable_a heresy_n than_o for_o hold_v against_o image_n and_o some_o so_o foul_a as_o fox_n himself_o will_v be_v ashamed_a to_o defend_v they_o though_o he_o make_v he_o a_o saint_n of_o his_o church_n and_o therefore_o like_o a_o fox_n he_o leave_v they_o out_o as_o for_o example_n the_o foresay_a caesarius_n write_v thus_o almaricus_fw-la magister_fw-la pravitatis_fw-la haec_fw-la asseruit_fw-la almericus_n a_o master_n of_o error_n teach_v these_o proposition_n follow_v 24._o that_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n of_o body_n at_o all_o that_o there_o be_v no_o paradise_n nor_o hell._n that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v no_o more_o in_o the_o sacrament_n after_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n than_o in_o a_o stone_n or_o horse_n that_o god_n speak_v as_o much_o in_o ovid_n as_o in_o augustin_n and_o other_o such_o absurd_a proposition_n to_o the_o number_n of_o twenty_o for_o which_o he_o be_v burn_v open_o in_o paris_n in_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 1208._o franc._n cum_fw-la aliis_fw-la quibusdam_fw-la haereticis_fw-la blasphemis_fw-la in_o personas_fw-la s._n trinitatis_fw-la say_v gagninus_n with_o certain_a other_o blasphemous_a heretic_n against_o the_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n 25._o this_o be_v relate_v not_o only_o by_o the_o say_v gagninus_n but_o by_o caesarius_n also_o 1208._o as_o before_o i_o have_v cite_v gerson_n also_o chancellor_n of_o the_o same_o university_n paulus_n aemilius_n and_o genebrordus_n two_o learned_a and_o reverend_a bishop_n and_o now_o let_v the_o reader_n consider_v what_o a_o saint_n john_n fox_n have_v choose_v as_o the_o second_o pillar_n of_o his_o church_n after_o pope_n innocentius_n and_o how_o false_a a_o companion_n he_o be_v in_o that_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o be_v a_o learned_a bishop_n and_o condemn_v only_o for_o hold_v against_o image_n and_o thus_o much_o of_o abbot_n joachim_n and_o almaricus_fw-la of_o who_o john_n fox_n make_v a_o ill_a choice_n to_o be_v the_o first_o founder_n of_o his_o hierarchy_n see_v that_o neither_o of_o they_o agree_v with_o he_o or_o he_o in_o faith_n and_o belief_n there_o follow_v in_o fox_n the_o martyr_n of_o alsatia_n of_o who_o we_o read_v say_v he_o a_o hundred_o to_o be_v burn_v in_o one_o day_n by_o the_o say_v innocentius_n etc._n etc._n to_o show_v fox_n to_o be_v
religion_n from_o those_o downward_o to_o john_n wickliff_n be_v common_o infect_v with_o some_o point_n of_o these_o two_o general_a sect_n the_o waldenses_n or_o albigenses_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v needful_a to_o stand_v upon_o the_o examination_n of_o every_o one_o of_o they_o see_v that_o their_o opinion_n be_v know_v to_o be_v such_o as_o they_o can_v not_o possible_o be_v of_o one_o church_n with_o fox_n and_o his_o company_n fox_n yet_o must_v we_o note_v this_o by_o the_o way_n also_o that_o fox_n do_v commit_v infinite_a confusion_n falsehood_n and_o cozenage_n in_o all_o this_o his_o enumeration_n account_v some_o for_o disciple_n of_o the_o albigenses_n milan_n that_o live_v 100_o year_n before_o they_o as_o marsilius_n patavinus_n who_o live_v under_o pope_n paschasius_fw-la ii_o about_o the_o year_n 1110._o which_o be_v more_o than_o a_o 100_o year_n before_o pope_n innocentius_n iii_o as_o both_o alvarus_n and_o alphonsus_n de_fw-fr castro_n do_v testify_v and_o never_o hold_v any_o point_n of_o the_o former_a heresy_n armachanus_fw-la but_o only_o some_o proposition_n agiain_v the_o degree_n and_o live_v of_o ecclesiastical_a person_n and_o the_o like_a falsehood_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o gulielmus_fw-la de_fw-la sancto_fw-la amore_fw-la who_o live_v about_o the_o year_n 1250._o be_v a_o catholic_a man_n in_o all_o point_n and_o only_o have_v some_o quarrelling_n with_o religious_a order_n as_o in_o like_a sort_n armachanus_fw-la archbishop_n of_o armach_n in_o ireland_n also_o have_v for_o which_o cause_n only_a fox_n make_v he_o of_o his_o church_n though_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n he_o hold_v no_o one_o article_n of_o the_o protestant_a faith_n with_o he_o different_z from_o the_o catholic_a and_o consequent_o fox_n do_v extreme_o abuse_v they_o by_o conjoin_v they_o here_o with_o divers_a heretic_n burn_v for_o the_o foresay_a blasphemous_a opinion_n 32._o the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o william_n occam_n and_o gregorius_n arminensis_n two_o catholic_a scholman_n and_o every_o day_n allege_v for_o such_o in_o our_o school_n robert_n grossead_a also_o fox_n our_o learned_a bishop_n of_o lincoln_n be_v in_o the_o same_o predicament_n as_o in_o like_a manner_n dante_n be_v and_o petrarcha_n italian_n poet_n that_o never_o hold_v any_o jot_n of_o protestant_a religion_n in_o the_o world_n and_o yet_o be_v bring_v in_o here_o by_o john_n fox_n as_o man_n of_o his_o church_n and_o belief_n with_o the_o great_a falsehood_n and_o foolery_n in_o the_o world_n and_o this_o forsooth_o for_o that_o in_o some_o place_n of_o their_o work_n they_o reprehend_v the_o manner_n of_o rome_n or_o live_v of_o some_o pope_n in_o those_o day_n which_o be_v as_o good_a a_o argument_n as_o if_o a_o man_n will_v prove_v that_o st._n paul_n be_v not_o of_o the_o faith_n 5._o or_o religion_n of_o the_o corinthian_n for_o that_o he_o reprehend_v they_o sharp_o for_o fornication_n use_v among_o they_o 33._o wherefore_o to_o leave_v the_o rabble_n that_o follow_v of_o this_o people_n as_o namely_o thirty_o six_o citizen_n of_o moguntia_n burn_v an._n dom._n 1390._o and_o another_o company_n of_o like_a people_n to_o wit_n one_o hundred_o and_o forty_o put_v in_o the_o fire_n throughout_o the_o province_n of_o narbone_n and_o twenty_o four_o more_o put_v to_o death_n in_o paris_n in_o the_o year_n 1210._o and_o other_o particular_a saint_n of_o his_o church_n recount_v and_o canonize_v by_o fox_n to_o leave_v these_o i_o say_v and_o to_o come_v down_o to_o our_o lolhard_n and_o wickliffian_n and_o their_o follower_n in_o england_n we_o have_v treat_v of_o their_o doctrine_n sufficient_o in_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n show_v how_o far_o different_a it_o be_v from_o that_o of_o fox_n and_o his_o fellow_n but_o now_o for_o their_o action_n we_o be_v to_o consider_v that_o the_o lolhard_n begin_v from_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 1320._o or_o thereabouts_o and_o wickliff_n from_o the_o year_n 1370._o and_o therewith_o raise_v infinite_a trouble_n garboil_n and_o tumult_n in_o our_o country_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o lamentable_a story_n set_v down_o by_o thomas_n walsingham_n of_o the_o whole_a people_n put_v in_o commotion_n in_o king_n richard_n ii_o his_o time_n against_o the_o nobility_n and_o clergy_n by_o these_o kind_n of_o people_n under_o their_o seditious_a captain_n jack_n straw_n wat_n tiler_n and_o the_o rest_n and_o so_o again_o under_o some_o other_o king_n 1414._o whilst_o this_o heresy_n last_v and_o namely_o against_o the_o two_o valiant_a and_o most_o catholic_a prince_n king_n henry_n iu._n and_o king_n henry_n v._o his_o son._n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o who_o reign_n to_o wit_n king_n henry_n v._o john_n stow_z write_v thus_o 34._o the_o favourer_n of_o wickliffs_n doctrine_n do_v nail_v up_o schedule_n upon_o the_o church_n door_n of_o london_n contain_v that_o there_o be_v a_o hundred_o thousand_o ready_a to_o rise_v against_o all_o such_o as_o can_v not_o away_o with_o their_o sect_n etc._n etc._n and_o hereon_o follow_v the_o open_a rebellion_n of_o sir_n john_n oldcastle_n and_o sir_n roger_n acton_n and_o other_o in_o s._n giles_n field_n by_o holborn_n 9_o which_o before_o we_o have_v touch_v and_o yet_o be_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n such_o as_o this_o sect_n can_v never_o prevail_v in_o england_n neither_o then_o or_o after_o so_o catholic_n be_v our_o prince_n until_o some_o point_n thereof_o be_v renew_v by_o luther_n and_o zwinglius_fw-la the_o late_a be_v admit_v in_o k._n edward_n day_n i_o mean_v the_o sect_n of_o zwinglius_fw-la as_o all_o man_n know_v be_v the_o first_o sect_n that_o ever_o be_v admit_v public_o in_o england_n either_o by_o britan_n or_o englishman_n from_o christ_n to_o that_o day_n for_o as_o for_o king_n henry_n viii_o though_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n he_o admit_v the_o opinion_n of_o luther_n yet_o in_o other_o thing_n as_o 12._o before_o we_o have_v show_v at_o large_a he_o hold_v in_o all_o article_n the_o catholic_a roman_a faith_n with_o singular_a hatred_n against_o both_o lollard_n wickliffian_n and_o lutheran_n but_o much_o more_o against_o zwinglian_o and_o other_o such_o sacramentary_a sectary_n as_o by_o his_o law_n make_v for_o their_o punishment_n and_o repression_n do_v sufficient_o appear_v 35._o and_o albeit_o his_o majesty_n have_v yield_v once_o in_o that_o one_o point_v of_o ecclesiastical_a supremacy_n and_o subordination_n which_o hold_v before_o all_o the_o rest_n in_o joint_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n though_o sect_n and_o sectary_n do_v grow_v upon_o he_o so_o fast_o as_o with_o all_o his_o severe_a law_n he_o can_v hardly_o repress_v they_o in_o his_o own_o day_n heretic_n yet_o much_o more_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n see_v after_o his_o death_n in_o that_o present_o all_o be_v turn_v upside_o down_o in_o the_o minority_n of_o his_o son_n notwithstanding_o his_o law_n testament_n and_o ordinance_n to_o the_o contrary_n and_o that_o by_o those_o who_o he_o most_o trust_v on_o that_o behalf_n and_o who_o in_o his_o day_n have_v show_v themselves_o most_o earnest_a against_o zwinglian_o and_o their_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o a_o thing_n most_o abhor_v by_o the_o old_a king_n their_o master_n i_o mean_v cranmer_z ridley_n seymor_n and_o dudley_n the_o chief_a changer_n of_o all_o in_o king_n edward_n day_n 36._o but_o this_o be_v the_o common_a event_n where_o prince_n be_v not_o careful_a at_o the_o beginning_n as_o walsingham_n do_v well_o note_n about_o the_o rise_n of_o wickliff_n heresy_n in_o in_o the_o end_n of_o king_n edward_n iii.'s_n time_n when_o that_o old_a king_n be_v now_o impotent_a beginning_n and_o whole_o govern_v by_o woman_n leave_v the_o care_n of_o his_o kingdom_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o son_n the_o duke_n of_o lancaster_n and_o other_o that_o follow_v he_o who_o have_v partly_o emulation_n and_o jar_n with_o the_o bishop_n of_o canterbury_n winchester_n london_n and_o some_o other_o principal_a man_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o partly_o desire_v to_o invade_v church_n live_n which_o wickliff_n preach_v to_o be_v lawful_a they_o be_v content_a to_o wink_v at_o he_o yea_o and_o to_o use_v he_o and_o his_o doctrine_n open_o against_o the_o say_a bishop_n and_o clergy_n as_o also_o against_o monk_n and_o abbot_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o of_o k._n richard_n ii.'s_n time_n as_o appear_v both_o in_o the_o say_v walsingham_n and_o stow_n who_o relate_v the_o call_n of_o wickliff_n to_o london_n for_o this_o effect_n where_o he_o be_v public_o and_o scandalous_o bear_v out_o by_o the_o say_a duke_n and_o sir_n henry_n piercy_n and_o other_o of_o that_o faction_n against_o the_o say_a bishop_n monk_n and_o abbot_n which_o here_o we_o shall_v set_v down_o in_o stow_n own_o word_n take_v by_o he_o out_o of_o walsingham_n and_o other_o writer_n which_o do_v contain_v the_o very_a sum_n of_o
pope_n 6._o but_o what_o do_v he_o from_o his_o breach_n forward_o do_v he_o spare_v the_o new_a gospeler_n any_o thing_n more_o for_o his_o breach_n with_o the_o pope_n true_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o for_o some_o year_n he_o wink_v at_o their_o do_n somewhat_o more_o than_o before_o consider_v the_o new_a difficulty_n wherein_o he_o have_v cast_v himself_o by_o his_o new_a disunion_n and_o breach_n as_o before_o we_o have_v note_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o former_a part._n but_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v put_v his_o domestical_a affair_n in_o some_o quiet_a and_o security_n religion_n he_o return_v again_o to_o his_o former_a course_n and_o custom_n of_o restrain_v these_o new_a unruly_a spirit_n by_o call_v they_o to_o account_v for_o their_o innovation_n and_o proceed_v juridical_o against_o they_o according_a to_o church_n canon_n and_o according_a to_o his_o former_a judgement_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n which_o as_o i_o may_v show_v by_o divers_a way_n of_o proof_n as_o well_o of_o act_n of_o parliament_n as_o proclamation_n injunction_n and_o other_o declaration_n of_o his_o will_n and_o opinion_n in_o this_o behalf_n so_o will_v we_o allege_v only_o two_o or_o three_o example_n in_o the_o first_o kind_n beside_o those_o which_o we_o have_v set_v down_o in_o the_o 12._o former_a part._n 7._o in_o the_o 31st_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n which_o be_v seven_o or_o eight_o year_n after_o his_o breach_n with_o the_o pope_n there_o be_v make_v a_o act_n for_o abolish_n of_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n about_o christian_a faith_n which_o begin_v thus_o whereas_o the_o king_n be_v most_o excellent_a majesty_n be_v by_o god_n law_n supreme_a head_n immediate_o under_o he_o 14._o of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o england_n etc._n etc._n intend_v the_o conservation_n of_o the_o same_o church_n in_o a_o true_a sincere_a and_o uniform_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n religion_n etc._n etc._n thus_o begin_v his_o preface_n and_o then_o he_o determine_v together_o with_o the_o parliament_n that_o whosoever_o shall_v deny_v the_o real_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n or_o affirm_v that_o the_o communion_n be_v necessary_a under_o both_o kind_n protestant_n or_o that_o priest_n may_v by_o god_n law_n take_v wife_n after_o priesthood_n or_o that_o vow_n of_o chastity_n be_v not_o to_o be_v observe_v or_o that_o private_a mass_n be_v not_o to_o be_v say_v or_o that_o sacramental_a and_o auricular_a confession_n be_v not_o necessary_a etc._n etc._n all_o these_o he_o condemn_v as_o heretic_n and_o for_o such_o to_o be_v apprehend_v arraign_v condemn_v and_o burn_v as_o at_o large_a be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o statute_n 8._o and_o the_o very_a next_o year_n after_o perceive_v that_o notwithstanding_o his_o former_a statute_n against_o protestant_a opinion_n the_o same_o do_v grow_v and_o be_v spread_v abroad_o in_o england_n he_o ordain_v another_o statute_n which_o begin_v thus_o whereas_o the_o king_n be_v róyal_a majesty_n of_o his_o bless_a and_o gracious_a disposition_n 26._o etc._n etc._n well_o weigh_v that_o out_o of_o sundry_a outward_a part_n and_o place_n there_o have_v spring_v be_v sow_v &_o set_v forth_o divers_a heretical_a erroneous_a &_o dangerous_a opinion_n &_o doctrine_n in_o the_o religion_n of_o christ_n whereby_o his_o grace_n leige-people_n may_v be_v induce_v to_o unfaithfulness_n misbelief_n miscreancy_n and_o contempt_n of_o god_n to_o the_o utter_a confusion_n and_o damnation_n of_o soul_n etc._n etc._n for_o this_o cause_n his_o majesty_n according_a to_o the_o very_a gospel_n and_o law_n of_o god_n mean_v to_o have_v matter_n determine_v and_o declare_v etc._n etc._n thus_o he_o write_v in_o the_o statute_n remit_v himself_o to_o his_o further_a declaration_n judgement_n which_o be_v whole_o against_o protestant_n who_o faith_n and_o religion_n you_o see_v here_o call_v by_o the_o king_n unfaithfulness_n misbelief_n miscreancy_n contempt_n of_o god_n heretical_a erroneous_a and_o dangerous_a doctrine_n tend_v to_o utter_v confusion_n and_o damnation_n of_o soul_n etc._n etc._n and_o this_o prove_v by_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o very_a gospel_n itself_o as_o his_o majesty_n affirm_v 9_o and_o will_v you_o have_v more_o clear_a testimony_n of_o his_o settle_a judgement_n against_o protestant_n then_o this_o but_o yet_o hear_v further_o for_o that_o the_o same_o king_n divers_a year_n after_n after_o this_o again_o towards_o the_o end_n of_o his_o day_n have_v have_v good_a experience_n of_o the_o falsehood_n of_o protestant_n in_o corrupt_v the_o very_a scripture_n themselves_o by_o their_o crafty_a translation_n scripture_n note_n and_o commentary_n he_o be_v force_v to_o forbid_v under_o grievous_a punishment_n the_o read_n of_o the_o foresay_a scripture_n in_o english_a which_o before_o he_o have_v permit_v as_o appear_v by_o a_o peculiar_a statute_n make_v for_o that_o purpose_n and_o for_o inhibit_v protestant_n book_n sermon_n and_o preach_n in_o the_o 34th_o and_o 35th_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n this_o statute_n be_v entitle_v a_o act_n for_o the_o advancement_n of_o true_a religion_n 1._o say_v therein_o as_o follow_v whereas_o the_o king_n be_v most_o royal_a majesty_n sumpreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o also_o of_o ireland_n perceive_v that_o notwithstanding_o such_o holy_a doctrine_n and_o docucument_n as_o his_o majesty_n have_v hitherto_o cause_v to_o be_v set_v forth_o beside_o the_o great_a liberty_n grant_v unto_o they_o in_o have_v the_o new_a and_o old_a testament_n among_o they_o protestant_n which_o notwithstanding_o many_o seditious_a arrogant_a and_o ignorant_a parson_n pretend_v to_o be_v lear_v have_v the_o perfect_a and_o true_a knowledge_n understanding_n and_o judgement_n of_o sacred_a scripture_n etc._n etc._n intend_v to_o subvert_v the_o very_a true_a and_o perfect_a exposition_n thereof_o after_o their_o perverse_a fantasy_n have_v take_v upon_o they_o not_o only_o to_o preach_v teach_v declare_v etc._n etc._n but_o also_o by_o print_a book_n ballad_n play_n rhythme_n song_n and_o other_o fantasy_n subtle_o to_o beguile_v his_o majesty_n leige-subject_n etc._n etc._n 10._o behold_v king_n henry_n description_n of_o protestant_n their_o wit_n nature_n condition_n and_o doctrine_n but_o now_o follow_v the_o remedy_n wherefore_o to_o ordain_v and_o establish_v a_o certain_a form_n of_o pure_a and_o sincere_a teach_v agreeable_a to_o god_n word_n and_o true_a doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a and_o apostolical_a church_n etc._n etc._n be_v it_o enact_v that_o all_o manner_n of_o book_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n in_o english_a be_v of_o the_o crafty_a false_a and_o untrue_a translation_n of_o william_n tyndall_n book_n and_o all_o other_o book_n or_o write_n in_o the_o english_a tongue_n teach_v or_o compose_v any_o matter_n of_o christian_a religion_n contrary_a to_o that_o doctrine_n which_o since_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1540_o be_v have_v or_o shall_v be_v set_v forth_o by_o his_o majesty_n be_v clear_o and_o utter_o abolish_v etc._n etc._n thus_o ordain_v king_n henry_n of_o the_o protestant_n book_n and_o doctrine_n and_o this_o censure_n he_o give_v of_o william_n tyndall_n truth_n and_o honesty_n in_o translate_n the_o scripture_n who_o john_n fox_n call_v not_o only_o the_o true_a servant_n and_o martyr_n of_o god_n 981._o but_o the_o apostle_n also_o of_o england_n in_o this_o our_o latter_a age._n 11._o wherefore_o i_o do_v not_o see_v how_o fox_n can_v with_o any_o reason_n make_v king_n henry_n to_o be_v a_o gospeller_n of_o his_o religion_n or_o so_o earnest_a a_o defender_n of_o the_o same_o or_o why_o he_o shall_v paint_v he_o with_o the_o bible_n in_o his_o hand_n hold_v up_o by_o cranmer_n and_o cromwell_n as_o before_o have_v be_v say_v and_o see_v in_o his_o paint_n see_v he_o contemn_v ever_o their_o doctrine_n and_o burn_v the_o professor_n thereof_o as_o notorious_a heretic_n unto_o his_o dying-day_n which_o be_v evident_a by_o many_o example_n but_o most_o clear_a and_o notorious_a by_o that_o of_o john_n lambert_n a_o famous_a zuinglian_a with_o who_o in_o solemn_a public_a audience_n he_o dispute_v in_o presence_n of_o all_o his_o clergy_n and_o nobility_n of_o the_o realm_n 8._o and_o cause_v cranmer_n to_o do_v the_o like_a and_o in_o the_o end_n make_v cromwell_n as_o his_o vicar-general_n to_o give_v the_o sentence_n of_o death_n against_o he_o and_o burn_v he_o in_o smithfield_n and_o this_o not_o two_o year_n before_o cromwell_n own_o condemnation_n for_o like_a heresy_n by_o the_o king_n be_v own_o pursuit_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o act_n of_o his_o condemnation_n yet_o extant_a and_o the_o same_o no_o doubt_n will_v he_o have_v do_v with_o cranmer_n which_o be_v the_o other_o upholder_n of_o his_o arm_n to_o maintain_v the_o new_a gospel_n according_a to_o fox_n his_o picture_n if_o he_o have_v know_v or_o suspect_v he_o not_o only_o for_o a_o upholder_n of_o
to_o this_o or_o that_o man_n or_o woman_n for_o so_o he_o come_v in_o present_o with_o his_o example_n of_o queen_n anne_n and_o cromwell_n so_o long_o say_v he_o as_o queen_n anne_n live_v the_o gospel_n have_v indifferent_a success_n ib._n but_o after_o that_o she_o by_o sinister_a instigation_n of_o some_o about_o the_o king_n be_v make_v away_o the_o course_n of_o the_o gospel_n begin_v again_o to_o decline_v but_o that_o the_o lord_n then_o stir_v up_o the_o lord_n cromwell_n opportune_o to_o help_v in_o that_o behalf_n who_o do_v much_o avail_n for_o the_o increase_n of_o god_n true_a religion_n and_o much_o more_o have_v bring_v it_o to_o perfection_n if_o the_o pestilent_a adversary_n malign_v the_o prosperous_a glory_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v not_o by_o contrary_a practise_v undermine_v he_o and_o supplant_v his_o virtuous_a proceed_n 22._o behold_v here_o a_o wise_a discourse_n of_o john_n fox_n whereby_o if_o nothing_o else_o be_v you_o may_v perceive_v how_o just_o and_o true_o that_o spirit_n of_o majesty_n that_o speak_v to_o he_o in_o his_o bed_n upon_o a_o sunday_n in_o the_o morning_n if_o you_o remember_v call_v he_o 7._o thou_o fool_n for_o that_o no_o man_n but_o a_o very_a fool_n indeed_o will_v have_v bring_v forth_o these_o example_n to_o have_v prove_v his_o purpose_n be_v both_o impertinent_a and_o clear_o false_a in_o themselves_o 23._o and_o first_o they_o be_v impertinent_a or_o rather_o against_o himself_o for_o that_o they_o show_v that_o his_o gospel_n have_v no_o other_o beginning_n in_o england_n but_o upon_o affection_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n false_a also_o be_v the_o example_n if_o we_o consider_v the_o time_n themselves_o for_o that_o the_o foresay_a new_a book_n of_o devise_v article_n mention_v by_o hall_n and_o hollinshead_n as_o the_o first_o public_a alteration_n in_o point_n of_o religion_n discover_v in_o king_n henry_n be_v make_v and_o set_v forth_o after_o the_o death_n of_o queen_n anne_n bullen_n to_o wit_n upon_o the_o 8_o of_o june_n 1536_o whereas_o the_o queen_n die_v upon_o the_o 19_o of_o may_n before_o and_o fox_n himself_o have_v relate_v the_o say_v article_n and_o book_n 30._o as_o set_v forth_o after_o the_o death_n of_o queen_n anne_n he_o say_v thus_o this_o book_n treat_v especial_o but_o of_o three_o sacrament_n baptism_n penance_n and_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o which_o the_o lincolnshire_n man_n take_v arm_n etc._n etc._n and_o then_o he_o add_v this_o note_n in_o the_o margin_n alteration_n of_o religion_n a_o little_a begin_v and_o after_o again_o present_o this_o other_o note_n commotion_n in_o lincolnshire_n whereby_o be_v evident_a out_o of_o his_o own_o word_n bullen_n that_o the_o first_o beginning_n of_o any_o alteration_n in_o point_n of_o religion_n towards_o his_o gospel_n be_v after_o the_o death_n of_o queen_n anne_n bullen_n and_o consequent_o it_o be_v a_o ridiculous_a foolery_n which_o he_o write_v before_o that_o so_o long_o as_o queen_n anne_n live_v the_o gospel_n have_v indifferent_a success_n etc._n etc._n 24._o the_o other_o example_n also_o of_o cromwell_n be_v no_o less_o apparent_o false_a for_o that_o beside_o the_o particular_n which_o you_o have_v hear_v before_o of_o his_o assist_v to_o punish_v and_o burn_v protestant_n and_o his_o sentence_n of_o death_n give_v against_o lambert_n with_o the_o protestation_n he_o make_v at_o his_o own_o death_n of_o his_o be_v catholic_n henry_n and_o never_o doubt_v of_o any_o one_o point_n of_o catholic_a religion_n beside_o all_o this_o i_o say_v it_o be_v notorious_a that_o when_o the_o severe_a statute_n of_o six_o article_n be_v make_v against_o all_o sort_n of_o protestant_n in_o the_o 31st_o year_n of_o king_n henry_n reign_n which_o be_v in_o the_o month_n of_o april_n 1540_o as_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o book_n of_o statute_n itself_o and_o hall_n holinshead_n and_o other_o chronicler_n cromwell_n be_v then_o in_o his_o high_a authority_n and_o favor_n with_o the_o king_n as_o be_v evident_a for_o that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o very_a same_o parliament_n beside_o all_o his_o other_o great_a office_n before_o receive_v as_o of_o baron_n chancellor_n knight_n of_o the_o garter_n master_n of_o the_o jewel_n vicar-general_n in_o spiritual_a affair_n and_o other_o like_a title_n he_o be_v create_v also_o earl_n of_o essex_n and_o high-chamberlain_n of_o england_n 950._o which_o holinshead_n set_v down_o in_o these_o word_n the_o 18_o of_o april_n at_o westminster_n be_v lord_n thomas_n cromwell_n create_v earl_n of_o essex_n and_o ordain_v great_a chamberlain_n of_o england_n which_o office_n the_o earl_n of_o oxford_n be_v wont_n ever_o to_o enjoy_v also_o gregory_n his_o son_n be_v make_v lord_n cromwell_n etc._n etc._n thus_o write_v he_o and_o if_o in_o cromwell_n most_o flourish_a time_n this_o act_n of_o six_o article_n come_v out_o for_o punishment_n of_o protestant_n the_o most_o severe_a that_o can_v be_v imagine_v how_o fond_a and_o childish_a a_o babble_n be_v that_o before_o use_v by_o fox_n when_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o as_o long_o as_o the_o good_a lord_n cromwell_n be_v in_o credit_n or_o bare_a rule_n with_o the_o king_n their_o gospel_n go_v prosperous_o &_o c_o 25._o well_o then_o by_o all_o this_o we_o may_v see_v how_o poor_a and_o tread_v down_o a_o state_n john_n fox_n church_n and_o religion_n hold_v under_o king_n henry_n notwithstanding_o all_o his_o brag_n and_o flatter_v of_o he_o in_o his_o picture_n which_o yet_o that_o you_o may_v not_o think_v we_o mean_v only_o of_o the_o temporal_a or_o external_a condition_n or_o contemptibility_n of_o his_o church_n for_o of_o that_o perhaps_o he_o will_v brag_v see_v he_o define_v his_o church_n by_o the_o word_n obscure_a and_o tread_v down_o i_o will_v have_v you_o here_o consider_v brief_o but_o two_o thing_n only_o for_o the_o end_n of_o this_o chapter_n which_o direct_o do_v appertain_v to_o the_o true_a spiritual_a misery_n of_o fox_n church_n and_o religion_n in_o those_o day_n under_o king_n henry_n if_o a_o confusion_n of_o fantastical_a opinion_n error_n and_o heresy_n may_v be_v call_v a_o religion_n 26._o the_o first_o be_v confusion_n that_o in_o king_n henry_n day_n at_o leastwise_o for_o a_o great_a part_n thereof_o the_o protestant_n sect_n be_v not_o yet_o full_o distinguish_v into_o their_o class_n or_o order_n but_o be_v a_o great_a confuse_a heap_n of_o new_a opinion_n all_o go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o gospeler_n or_o protestant_n as_o well_o lutheran_n oecolampadian_o zwinglians_n and_o other_o sacramentary_n as_o waldensian_o wickliffian_n anabaptist_n libertine_n and_o other_o suchlike_a so_o as_o in_o this_o first_o heap_n and_o mass_n of_o gospeler_n be_v contain_v all_o the_o several_a sect_n that_o since_o have_v be_v distinguish_v as_o the_o four_o element_n and_o particular_a part_n thereof_o be_v contain_v according_a to_o the_o poet_n fiction_n in_o that_o great_a confuse_a chaos_n of_o the_o world_n before_o it_o be_v distinguish_v or_o to_o speak_v more_o proper_o they_o be_v as_o the_o bear_n whelp_n when_o first_o they_o be_v bear_v and_o new_o fall_v from_o their_o mother_n womb_n to_o wit_n certain_a disform_v gross_a confuse_a thing_n which_o by_o often_o lick_v of_o their_o parent_n be_v polish_v at_o last_o and_o bring_v to_o some_o fashion_n of_o handsome_a creature_n such_o as_o you_o know_v bear_n whelp_n to_o be_v 27._o and_o even_o so_o be_v it_o in_o those_o day_n with_o protestant_n religion_n for_o that_o every_o man_n that_o will_v hold_v a_o new_a opinion_n of_o what_o sect_n soever_o or_o will_v speak_v against_o the_o catholic_a church_n or_o doctrine_n then_o use_v be_v admit_v present_o for_o a_o brother_n of_o the_o new_a gospel_n and_o for_o a_o sincere_a servant_n of_o god_n and_o holy_a gospeller_n as_o john_n fox_n everywhere_o call_v they_o without_o distinction_n whether_o he_o be_v a_o lutheran_n zuinglian_n anabaptist_n waldensian_n wickliffist_n lolhard_n or_o whatsoever_o else_o but_o since_o that_o time_n this_o chaos_n have_v be_v somewhat_o more_o distinguish_v and_o polish_v and_o every_o sort_n of_o sectary_n divide_v into_o their_o class_n haeret_fw-la which_o luther_n himself_o begin_v first_o to_o do_v note_v nine_o distinct_a sect_n to_o have_v rise_v in_o few_o year_n after_o he_o out_o of_o his_o doctrine_n and_o these_o only_a of_o sacramentary_n whereunto_o his_o chief_a scholar_n melancthon_n a_o little_a before_o his_o death_n in_o his_o judgement_n write_v to_o the_o palsgrave_n or_o prince_n elector_n of_o rhine_n add_v six_o more_o to_o be_v among_o the_o lutheran_n themselves_o but_o other_o that_o have_v gather_v they_o more_o exact_o and_o distinct_o as_o staphilus_n a_o most_o learned_a man_n and_o counsellor_n to_o the_o emperor_n bishop_n lyndan_n dr._n gabriel_n prateolus_n and_o other_o do_v divide_v they_o into_o a_o far_a great_a number_n
of_o a_o worshipful_a and_o honourable_a knight_n inglefield_n that_o afterward_o be_v of_o queen_n mary_n privy_a council_n and_o be_v either_o present_a when_o these_o thing_n be_v speak_v by_o joan_n of_o kent_n or_o hear_v it_o from_o they_o that_o be_v present_a from_o who_o also_o i_o receive_v divers_a other_o particularity_n which_o in_o this_o chapter_n and_o the_o former_a be_v touch_v by_o i_o know_v the_o man_n to_o be_v of_o such_o wisdom_n and_o entire_a credit_n as_o i_o can_v hardly_o follow_v a_o better_a author_n in_o thing_n of_o his_o time_n 16._o well_o then_o this_o be_v the_o first_o point_n obtain_v in_o this_o first_o parliament_n of_o king_n edward_n that_o all_o sect_n have_v impunity_n whereof_o fox_n glory_v much_o in_o these_o word_n these_o meek_a and_o gentle_a time_n of_o king_n edward_n under_o the_o government_n of_o this_o noble_a protector_n have_v this_o one_o commendation_n proper_a to_o they_o that_o during_o the_o whole_a time_n of_o the_o six_o year_n of_o this_o king_n be_v much_o tranquillity_n and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o breathing-time_n be_v grant_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o england_n etc._n etc._n neither_o in_o smithfield_n edward_n nor_o any_o other_o quarter_n of_o this_o realm_n be_v any_o hear_v to_o suffer_v for_o any_o matter_n of_o religion_n either_o papist_n or_o protestant_n either_o for_o one_o opinion_n or_o other_o except_o only_o two_o one_o a_o englishwoman_n call_v joan_n of_o kent_n the_o other_o a_o dutchman_n name_v george_n paris_n who_o die_v for_o certain_a article_n not_o much_o necessary_a here_o to_o be_v rehearse_v behold_v here_o fox_n unwilling_a to_o rehearse_v the_o article_n of_o these_o two_o new_a gospeler_n which_o be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o denial_n of_o christ_n himself_o and_o for_o that_o he_o say_v no_o man_n suffer_v for_o religion_n itself_o either_o catholic_n or_o protestant_n in_o all_o king_n edward_n day_n edward_n i_o will_v ask_v he_o what_o he_o will_v say_v to_o so_o many_o hundred_o as_o be_v slay_v and_o put_v to_o death_n in_o somersetshire_n devonshire_n cornwall_n lincolnshire_n norfolk_n yorkshire_n and_o other_o place_n in_o the_o three_o year_n of_o king_n edward_n reign_n that_o be_v force_v to_o take_v arm_n for_o defence_n of_o their_o religion_n violent_o wrest_v from_o they_o against_o all_o truth_n reason_n law_n and_o order_n be_v not_o this_o suffer_v also_o for_o religion_n but_o let_v we_o hear_v john_n fox_n himself_o confess_v unto_o we_o the_o manner_n of_o entrance_n of_o his_o gospel_n into_o england_n 17._o after_o soft_a beginning_n say_v he_o by_o little_a and_o little_a 14._o great_a thing_n follow_v in_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o a_o new_a face_n of_o thing_n begin_v now_o to_o appear_v as_o it_o be_v on_o a_o stage_n new_a player_n come_v in_o and_o the_o other_o thrust_v out_o for_o the_o most_o part_n the_o bishop_n of_o church_n and_o dioceses_n be_v change_v etc._n etc._n bonner_n bishop_n of_o london_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o marshalsea_n and_o deprive_v gardener_n bishop_n of_o winchester_n and_o tonstal_v bishop_n of_o durham_n be_v cast_v into_o the_o tower_n etc._n etc._n lo_o here_o by_o fox_n his_o own_o confession_n what_o peace_n and_o meekness_n there_o be_v use_v in_o these_o gentle_a time_n of_o king_n edward_n under_o the_o government_n of_o this_o noble_a protector_n though_o they_o be_v but_o six_o year_n in_o all_o and_o let_v the_o reader_n confess_v that_o fox_n have_v a_o special_a gift_n to_o contradict_v himself_o though_o it_o be_v in_o the_o self_n same_o page_n but_o now_o to_o the_o second_o point_n conclude_v in_o this_o parliament_n about_o matter_n of_o religion_n sacrament_n 18._o the_o second_o point_n be_v about_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n and_o use_v thereof_o which_o as_o it_o be_v a_o very_a important_a and_o principal_a point_n for_o these_o new_a gospeler_n of_o king_n edward_n day_n to_o declare_v their_o opinion_n whether_o they_o will_v be_v lutheran_n or_o sacramentary_n so_o they_o be_v whole_o divide_v among_o themselves_o in_o this_o point_n some_o of_o they_o come_v from_o wittenberg_n and_o other_o place_n of_o saxony_n which_o follow_v luther_n some_o other_o from_o strasburg_n basil_n and_o other_o town_n among_o the_o swisser_n where_o the_o doctrine_n of_o zuinglius_fw-la bare_a rule_n other_o that_o be_v home-protestants_a and_o desire_v to_o pass_v no_o further_o in_o neither_o of_o these_o two_o particular_a sect_n and_o faction_n but_o only_o so_o far_o as_o be_v needful_a for_o hold_v their_o woman_n they_o have_v take_v as_o cranmer_n and_o his_o fellow_n they_o can_v in_o no_o case_n come_v to_o any_o accord_n or_o agreement_n in_o this_o matter_n but_o only_o to_o publish_v a_o act_n or_o statute_n like_o a_o ship-man_n hose_n that_o determine_v neither_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o 1._o the_o title_n whereof_o be_v this_o a_o act_n against_o such_o person_n as_o shall_v unreverent_o speak_v against_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n common_o call_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n and_o for_o the_o receive_n thereof_o under_o both_o kind_n and_o then_o begin_v the_o statute_n thus_o 19_o the_o king_n be_v most_o excellent_a majesty_n mean_v the_o governance_n of_o his_o most_o love_a subject_n to_o be_v in_o most_o perfect_a unity_n and_o concord_n in_o all_o thing_n and_o especial_o in_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o religion_n of_o god_n and_o wish_v the_o same_o to_o be_v bring_v to_o pass_v with_o all_o clemency_n on_o his_o part_n as_o his_o most_o princely_a serenity_n and_o majesty_n have_v already_o declare_v sacrament_n etc._n etc._n this_o be_v the_o preface_n and_o after_o come_v to_o the_o matter_n they_o say_v in_o the_o most_o comfortable_a sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n common_o call_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n etc._n etc._n which_o sacrament_n be_v institute_v by_o no_o less_o author_n than_o our_o saviour_n 11._o both_o god_n and_o man_n when_o at_o his_o last_o supper_n he_o do_v take_v the_o bread_n into_o his_o holy_a hand_n and_o do_v say_v take_v you_o and_o eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v and_o break_v for_o you_o etc._n etc._n which_o word_n speak_v of_o it_o be_v of_o eternal_a infallible_a and_o undoubted_a truth_n yet_o the_o say_a sacrament_n all_o this_o notwithstanding_o have_v be_v of_o late_a marvellous_o abuse_v by_o such_o manner_n of_o man_n before_o rehearse_v who_o of_o wickedness_n or_o else_o of_o ignorance_n and_o want_n of_o learning_n for_o certain_a abuse_n heretofore_o commit_v of_o some_o in_o misuse_v thereof_o have_v condemn_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o speech_n the_o whole_a thing_n and_o contemptuous_o deprave_v despise_a or_o revile_v the_o same_o most_o holy_a and_o bless_a sacrament_n and_o not_o only_o dispute_v or_o reason_v unreverent_o and_o ungod_o of_o that_o high_a mystery_n but_o also_o in_o their_o sermon_n preach_n readins_n talk_v tune_n song_n play_n or_o test_n do_v name_n and_o call_v it_o by_o such_o vile_a and_o unseemly_a word_n as_o christian_a ear_n do_v abhor_v to_o hear_v rehearse_v for_o reformation_n whereof_o be_v it_o enact_v etc._n etc._n 20._o this_o be_v their_o narration_n and_o according_a thereunto_o they_o do_v set_v down_o remedy_n and_o punishment_n for_o they_o that_o shall_v speak_v any_o contemptuous_a word_n to_o deprave_v despise_v or_o revile_v this_o sacrament_n but_o what_o the_o word_n or_o sense_n thereof_o be_v in_o particular_a or_o what_o they_o mean_v by_o this_o despise_n or_o deprave_v they_o do_v not_o set_v down_o as_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v do_v if_o they_o have_v mean_v plain_o though_o by_o the_o word_n of_o their_o say_a narration_n it_o may_v appear_v this_o statute_n be_v make_v principal_o against_o sacramentary_n that_o deny_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o do_v dispute_v and_o reason_n unreverent_o and_o ungodly_a thereof_o this_o be_v the_o high_a injury_n contempt_n or_o depravation_n that_o can_v be_v do_v to_o it_o statute_n but_o it_o please_v not_o the_o maker_n of_o this_o statute_n to_o be_v understand_v or_o to_o deal_v clear_o for_o the_o present_a in_o this_o behalf_n but_o rather_o to_o speak_v obscure_o and_o doubtful_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v afterward_o have_v a_o starting-hole_n to_o get_v out_o at_o and_o become_v zwinglians_n or_o calvinist_n when_o they_o will_v the_o other_o clause_n of_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n under_o both_o kind_n to_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n they_o put_v down_o more_o clear_o with_o this_o exception_n only_o except_o necessity_n otherwise_o require_v by_o which_o word_n they_o allow_v also_o the_o use_n under_o one_o kind_n in_o time_n of_o necessity_n which_o be_v far_o from_o that_o which_o since_o
with_o great_a difficulty_n whereupon_o the_o say_a parliament_n be_v continue_v in_o disputation_n and_o contention_n especial_o about_o this_o matter_n for_o the_o space_n of_o four_o month_n and_o a_o half_a to_o wit_n from_o the_o 4._o of_o november_n unto_o the_o 14._o of_o march_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a space_n all_o be_v in_o suspense_n of_o what_o religion_n england_n shall_v be_v for_o as_o on_o the_o one_o side_n many_o that_o know_v or_o suspect_v the_o protector_n inclination_n do_v think_v and_o lay_v wager_n that_o zwinglianism_n will_v prevail_v so_o other_o hear_v that_o archbishop_n cranmer_n and_o his_o party_n stand_v resolute_o on_o the_o other_o side_n and_o have_v punish_v divers_a for_o speak_v against_o the_o mass_n 1181._o and_o real_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n a_o little_a before_o to_o wit_n one_o thomas_n dobbe_n a_o master_n of_o art_n in_o cambridge_n as_o fox_n tell_v we_o cast_v into_o the_o counter_a by_o cranmer_n and_o hold_v there_o till_o he_o die_v and_o john_n hume_n imprison_v for_o the_o same_o cause_n by_o the_o say_a archbishop_n this_o i_o say_v make_v many_o to_o expect_v and_o bet_n on_o the_o other_o side_n but_o especial_o this_o doubt_n and_o expectation_n be_v notorious_a in_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n and_o cambridge_n where_o peter_n martyr_n and_o bucer_n have_v read_v now_o for_o the_o space_n of_o a_o year_n and_o more_o and_o be_v oftentimes_o urge_v and_o press_v much_o by_o their_o scholar_n whereof_o the_o far_o great_a part_n in_o those_o day_n be_v catholic_n to_o declare_v themselves_o clear_o of_o what_o opinion_n they_o wear_v touch_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n to_o wit_n whether_o they_o be_v lutheran_n or_o zwinglian_o but_o they_o keep_v themselves_o aloof_o and_o indifferent_a or_o rather_o doubtful_a so_o far_o as_o they_o can_v until_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o parliament_n shall_v come_v yet_o be_v peter_n martyr_n put_v into_o a_o great_a strait_n thereby_o for_o that_o have_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o read_v and_o expound_v to_o the_o scholar_n of_o oxford_n the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n wherein_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n handle_v the_o institution_n of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n he_o have_v think_v to_o have_v come_v to_o that_o place_n just_a at_o the_o very_a time_n when_o the_o parliament_n shall_v have_v determine_v this_o controversy_n 34._o but_o the_o contention_n endure_v long_o by_o some_o month_n than_o he_o expect_v he_o be_v come_v to_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n long_o before_o they_o can_v end_v in_o london_n whereupon_o many_o post_n go_v to_o and_o fro_o between_o he_o and_o cranmer_n to_o require_v a_o speedy_a resolution_n meum_fw-la allege_v that_o he_o can_v not_o detain_v himself_o any_o long_o but_o that_o be_v come_v to_o the_o word_n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la he_o must_v needs_o declare_v himself_o a_o lutheran_n or_o a_o zuinglian_a but_o he_o be_v will_v to_o stay_v and_o entertain_v himself_o in_o other_o matter_n until_o the_o determination_n may_v come_v and_o so_o the_o poor_a friar_n do_v with_o admiration_n and_o laughter_n of_o all_o his_o scholar_n stand_v upon_o those_o precedent_a word_n accepit_fw-la panem_fw-la etc._n etc._n et_fw-la gratias_fw-la agens_fw-la etc._n etc._n fregit_fw-la etc._n etc._n et_fw-la dixit_fw-la etc._n etc._n accipite_fw-la &_o manducate_v etc._n etc._n discourse_v large_o of_o every_o one_o of_o these_o point_n and_o bear_v off_o from_o the_o other_o that_o ensue_v but_o when_o at_o length_n the_o post_n come_v that_o zuinglianism_n must_v be_v defend_v then_o step_v up_o peter_n martyr_n bold_o the_o next_o day_n and_o say_v hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la martyr_n this_o be_v my_o body_n interpret_n it_o this_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o my_o body_n add_v moreover_o that_o he_o wonder_v how_o any_o man_n can_v be_v of_o another_o opinion_n see_v this_o exposition_n be_v so_o clear_a whereas_o if_o the_o post_n have_v bring_v other_o news_n himself_o also_o will_v have_v teach_v the_o contrary_a opinion_n and_o this_o story_n be_v testify_v while_o they_o be_v alive_a by_o dr._n sanders_n dr._n allen_n dr._n stapleton_n and_o other_o that_o be_v present_a at_o this_o trifle_a and_o tergiversation_n of_o this_o apostate-frier_n and_o thus_o begin_v our_o zuinglian_a gospel_n in_o england_n under_o king_n edward_n vi._n 35._o now_o let_v we_o hear_v a_o word_n or_o two_o out_o of_o the_o statute_n itself_o about_o this_o communion_n book_n and_o profession_n of_o zuinglianism_n establish_v in_o england_n after_o two_o year_n strife_n among_o the_o protestant_n whereas_o of_o long_a time_n say_v the_o act_n there_o have_v be_v in_o this_o realm_n of_o england_n divers_a form_n of_o common_a prayer_n 1._o common_o call_v the_o service_n of_o the_o church_n as_o well_o concern_v the_o matin_n and_o even-song_n as_o also_o the_o holy_a communion_n call_v the_o mass_n etc._n etc._n and_o whereas_o the_o king_n majesty_n with_o the_o advice_n of_o his_o most_o entirely-beloved_n uncle_n the_o lord_n protector_n and_o other_o of_o his_o highness_n council_n have_v heretofore_o divers_a time_n assay_v to_o stay_v innovation_n or_o new_a rite_n concern_v the_o premise_n yet_o the_o same_o have_v not_o have_v such_o good_a success_n as_o his_o highness_n require_v in_o that_o behalf_n whereupon_o his_o highness_n by_o the_o most_o prudent_a advice_n aforesaid_a subject_n be_v please_v to_o bear_v with_o the_o frailty_n and_o weakness_n of_o his_o subject_n in_o that_o behalf_n of_o his_o great_a clemency_n have_v be_v not_o only_o content_a to_o abstain_v from_o punishment_n in_o that_o behalf_n but_o also_o to_o the_o intent_n that_o a_o uniform_a quiet_a and_o godly_a order_n shall_v be_v have_v concern_v the_o premise_n have_v appoint_v the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o certain_a of_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o discreet_a bishop_n to_o consider_v and_o ponder_v the_o premise_n and_o thereupon_o have_v as_o well_o a_o eye_n and_o respect_n to_o the_o most_o sincere_a and_o pure_a christian_a religion_n teach_v by_o the_o scripture_n as_o to_o the_o usage_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n shall_v draw_v and_o make_v one_o convenient_a and_o meet_a order_n rite_n and_o fashion_v of_o common-prayer_n and_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n to_o be_v use_v in_o england_n wales_n etc._n etc._n the_o which_o at_o this_o time_n by_o the_o aid_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n with_o uniform_a agreement_n be_v by_o they_o conclude_v set_v forth_o and_o deliver_v to_o his_o highness_n great_a comfort_n and_o quietness_n of_o mind_n in_o a_o book_n entitle_v the_o book_n of_o common-prayer_n and_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n etc._n etc._n 36._o this_o be_v the_o preface_n to_o that_o act_n of_o parliament_n whereby_o you_o may_v see_v that_o this_o communion-book_n be_v devise_v first_o for_o bear_v with_o the_o frailty_n of_o they_o that_o seek_v innovation_n &_o then_o that_o it_o be_v perform_v by_o uniform_a consent_n &_o aid_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n according_a to_o the_o most_o sincere_a and_o pure_a christian_a religion_n teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o last_o that_o the_o young_a child-prince_n receive_v great_a comfort_n and_o quietness_n of_o mind_n thereby_o all_o which_o be_v ridiculous_a if_o you_o consider_v what_o a_o multitude_n of_o error_n and_o gross_a absurdity_n the_o latter_a protestant_n especial_o the_o preciser_n sort_n of_o they_o have_v gather_v out_o against_o this_o book_n yea_o after_o it_o be_v twice_o more_o review_v alter_v and_o amend_v according_a to_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n as_o be_v pretend_v once_o in_o king_n edward_n day_n itself_o and_o then_o again_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o her_o majesty_n reign_n whereof_o though_o i_o have_v speak_v sufficient_o in_o my_o defence_n of_o the_o first_o encounter_n against_o sir_n f._n hastings_n yet_o can_v i_o omit_v to_o admonish_v the_o reader_n in_o this_o place_n to_o read_v the_o nine_o chapter_n of_o the_o second_o book_n communion-book_n entitle_v dangerous_a position_n etc._n etc._n set_v forth_o by_o public_a permission_n and_o print_v in_o london_n anno_fw-la 1593._o in_o which_o chapter_n you_o shall_v see_v put_v together_o the_o word_n of_o divers_a new_a gospeler_n concern_v this_o communion-book_n affirm_v here_o in_o the_o statute_n to_o be_v according_a to_o the_o most_o sincere_a and_o pure_a christian_a religion_n teach_v by_o the_o scripture_n but_o they_o say_v the_o contrary_a to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v full_a of_o corruption_n and_o that_o many_o of_o the_o content_n thereof_o be_v against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o sacrament_n wicked_o mangle_v and_o profane_v therein_o the_o lord_n supper_n not_o eat_v but_o make_v a_o pageant_n and_o stage_n play_v that_o their_o public_a baptism_n be_v full_a of_o childish_a superstitious_a toy_n 37._o and_o final_o not_o to_o stand_v any_o long_o
they_o cast_v he_o into_o the_o tower_n deprive_v he_o of_o his_o protectorship_n and_o have_v cut_v off_o his_o head_n also_o at_o that_o time_n 1549._o have_v not_o the_o duchess_n of_o somerset_n prudent_o pacify_v the_o earl_n of_o warwick_n by_o present_v a_o rich_a casket_n of_o jewel_n unto_o the_o countess_n his_o wife_n whereunto_o my_o author_n be_v privy_a and_o moreover_o she_o offer_v a_o new_a complot_n of_o affinity_n between_o the_o say_a earl_n and_o duke_n which_o afterward_o be_v effectuate_v to_o wit_n the_o marriage_n between_o the_o son_n of_o the_o earl_n and_o daughter_n of_o the_o duke_n all_o which_o 1555_o together_o with_o a_o most_o humble_a lowly_a and_o base_a submission_n make_v by_o the_o say_a protector_n which_o be_v extant_a in_o our_o chronicle_n move_v the_o earl_n to_o pardon_v he_o for_o the_o present_a and_o to_o restore_v he_o to_o a_o kind_n of_o liberty_n at_o his_o own_o house_n and_o after_o that_o again_o to_o the_o council_n and_o king_n presence_n for_o of_o all_o he_o be_v deprive_v but_o never_o to_o the_o protectorship_n nay_o soon_o after_o he_o cast_v he_o into_o prison_n again_o and_o cut_v off_o his_o head_n as_o all_o man_n know_v and_o have_v thereunto_o the_o help_n of_o many_o chief_a gospeler_n who_o not_o long_o after_o this_o lay_v other_o complot_n conform_a to_o the_o turbulent_a humour_n and_o fruit_n of_o this_o gospel_n and_o make_v other_o new_a alliance_n between_o the_o house_n of_o suffolk_n that_o be_v most_o forward_o of_o all_o other_o in_o gospel_v and_o the_o say_a earl_n of_o warwick_n now_o duke_n of_o northumberland_n which_o alliance_n be_v suppose_v to_o have_v shorten_v the_o young_a unfortunate_a king_n life_n and_o know_v to_o have_v mean_v the_o subversion_n of_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o the_o royal_a line_n and_o succession_n appoint_v by_o king_n henry_n viii_o cut_v off_o his_o two_o daughter_n mary_n and_o elizabeth_n that_o remain_v after_o king_n edward_n if_o god_n have_v not_o strange_o defend_v they_o by_o cut_v off_o these_o evangelical_n contrivance_n 43._o wherefore_o to_o be_v no_o long_o in_o this_o matter_n which_o be_v clear_a enough_o of_o itself_o we_o do_v see_v how_o the_o first_o public_a introduction_n of_o protestant_a religion_n that_o ever_o be_v admit_v in_o england_n from_o christ_n to_o that_o time_n come_v in_o both_o under_o king_n henry_n and_o much_o more_o under_o king_n edward_n his_o son_n to_o wit_n how_o and_o upon_o what_o occasion_n by_o who_o and_o what_o man_n the_o same_o be_v both_o preach_v and_o favour_v and_o what_o effect_n by_o what_o mean_n and_o in_o what_o form_n and_o fashion_v it_o be_v perform_v gospel_n for_o as_o for_o the_o occasion_n they_o have_v be_v declare_v before_o but_o under_o king_n edward_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o they_o be_v the_o childhood_n and_o infancy_n of_o a_o tender_a young_a prince_n together_o with_o the_o ambition_n covetousness_n pride_n and_o desire_v of_o sole_a command_n in_o his_o uncle_n the_o protector_n which_o motive_n make_v he_o break_v the_o will_n and_o testament_n law_n and_o ordinance_n of_o his_o old_a dread_a lord_n king_n henry_n before_o almost_o his_o blood_n be_v cold_a after_o his_o death_n and_o the_o like_a induction_n of_o promotion_n draw_v after_o he_o other_o who_o second_v his_o action_n as_o long_o as_o they_o be_v profitable_a unto_o they_o 44._o as_o for_o the_o man_n that_o first_o and_o principal_o broach_v these_o doctrine_n they_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n marry_v friar_n and_o apostate_n priest_n that_o live_n in_o concupiscence_n of_o woman_n and_o other_o sensuality_n desire_v to_o maintain_v and_o continue_v the_o same_o by_o the_o liberty_n of_o this_o new_a gospel_n the_o promoter_n and_o favourer_n of_o these_o man_n be_v such_o especial_o of_o the_o laity_n and_o clergy_n as_o have_v more_o interest_n by_o the_o change_n for_o their_o own_o promotion_n and_o advancement_n than_o conscience_n or_o persuasion_n of_o judgement_n for_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o religion_n as_o will_v appear_v if_o we_o shall_v name_v they_o one_o by_o one_o that_o then_o be_v of_o the_o council_n and_o chief_a authority_n the_o effect_n and_o spiritual_a fruit_n of_o this_o first_o change_n be_v as_o you_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v the_o most_o notorious_a vice_n of_o ambition_n dissimulation_n hatred_n deceit_n tyranny_n and_o subversion_n one_o of_o another_o together_o with_o division_n dissension_n garboil_n and_o desolation_n of_o the_o realm_n yea_o plain_a atheism_n irreligion_n and_o contempt_n of_o all_o religion_n that_o ever_o be_v know_v to_o have_v rise_v up_o in_o any_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n within_o the_o compass_n of_o so_o few_o year_n and_o that_o which_o be_v most_o remarkable_a there_o follow_v present_o the_o overthrow_n of_o all_o the_o principal_a actor_n and_o author_n of_o these_o innovation_n by_o god_n own_o wonderful_a hand_n and_o this_o more_o in_o these_o six_o year_n than_o in_o sixty_o or_o six_o score_n or_o perhaps_o six_o hundred_o have_v be_v see_v to_o have_v fall_v out_o in_o england_n in_o other_o time_n and_o no_o doubt_n but_o it_o be_v of_o singular_a consideration_n importance_n that_o whereas_o true_a christian_a religion_n but_o especial_o any_o change_n or_o reformation_n to_o the_o better_a part_n be_v admit_v there_o present_o do_v ensue_v by_o usual_a consequence_n great_a effect_n of_o piety_n devotion_n charity_n and_o virtuous_a life_n if_o the_o reformation_n be_v sincere_a &_o come_v from_o god_n indeed_o here_o on_o the_o contrary_a side_n the_o providence_n of_o god_n do_v show_v a_o notorious_a document_n to_o the_o whole_a world_n of_o the_o falsehood_n and_o wickedness_n of_o this_o new_a gospel_n in_o that_o the_o first_o professor_n and_o promoter_n thereof_o in_o our_o land_n fall_v to_o more_o open_a wickedness_n in_o these_o five_o year_n than_o in_o so_o many_o fifty_n before_o as_o have_v be_v say_v 45._o and_o the_o chief_a captain_n and_o ringleader_n of_o all_o this_o dance_n of_o innovation_n after_o the_o protector_n himself_o to_o wit_n the_o duke_n of_o northumberland_n come_v soon_o after_o to_o calamity_n fall_v into_o the_o account_n and_o reckon_n of_o this_o matter_n and_o make_v a_o long_a vehement_a declaration_n thereof_o in_o the_o chapel_n of_o the_o tower_n before_o divers_a of_o the_o council_n the_o day_n before_o he_o be_v put_v to_o death_n to_o wit_n upon_o the_o 21._o of_o august_n 1553_o show_v that_o he_o have_v find_v true_a by_o good_a experience_n that_o this_o new_a gospel_n which_o he_o have_v follow_v hitherto_o tend_v to_o nothing_o but_o to_o atheism_n in_o religion_n dissolution_n of_o life_n and_o perturbation_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n which_o he_o repeat_v again_o at_o his_o death_n and_o the_o same_o be_v present_o put_v in_o print_n and_o so_o it_o remain_v though_o holinsh_v hooker_n and_o harrison_n 1089._o like_o false_a companion_n as_o they_o be_v do_v leave_v it_o out_o whole_o of_o their_o large_a chronicle_n tell_v only_o that_o he_o and_o the_o duke_n of_o somerset_n be_v bury_v one_o by_o the_o other_o in_o the_o tower._n but_o stow_n proceed_v more_o handsome_o for_o though_o he_o omit_v the_o large_a rehearsal_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o do_v speak_v of_o other_o thing_n less_o odious_a yet_o do_v he_o so_o set_v down_o the_o thing_n as_o the_o truth_n may_v easy_o be_v see_v thereby_o which_o the_o other_o companion_n do_v hold_v from_o we_o of_o purpose_n for_o thus_o he_o write_v 46._o the_o rest_n of_o the_o duke_n speech_n almost_o in_o every_o point_n 1553._o be_v as_o he_o have_v say_v in_o the_o chapel_n of_o the_o tower_n save_v that_o when_o he_o have_v make_v confession_n of_o his_o belief_n stow_n dare_v not_o tell_v what_o belief_n for_o that_o it_o be_v whole_o catholic_n with_o many_o vehement_a protestation_n against_o the_o heresy_n of_o that_o time_n he_o have_v these_o word_n here_o i_o do_v protest_v unto_o you_o good_a people_n most_o earnest_o death_n even_o from_o the_o bottom_n of_o my_o heart_n that_o this_o which_o i_o have_v speak_v be_v of_o myself_o not_o be_v require_v nor_o move_v thereunto_o by_o any_o man_n for_o any_o flattery_n or_o hope_n of_o life_n i_o take_v witness_n of_o my_o lord_n of_o worcester_n here_o my_o old_a friend_n and_o ghostly_a father_n that_o he_o find_v i_o in_o this_o mind_n and_o opinion_n when_o he_o come_v to_o i_o but_o i_o have_v declare_v this_o only_a upon_o my_o own_o mind_n and_o affection_n and_o for_o the_o zeal_n and_o love_n that_o i_o bear_v to_o my_o natural_a country_n and_o i_o can_v good_a people_n rehearse_v much_o more_o even_a by_o experience_n that_o i_o have_v of_o this_o evil_a that_o be_v happen_v to_o this_o realm_n by_o th●se_a occasion_n but_o now_o you_o know_v i_o have_v another_o thing_n to_o do_v whereunto_o i_o
must_v prepare_v i_o etc._n etc._n and_o have_v thus_o speak_v he_o kneel_v down_o say_v to_o they_o that_o be_v about_o he_o i_o beseech_v you_o all_o to_o bear_v i_o witness_v that_o i_o die_v in_o the_o true_a catholic_n faith._n and_o then_o say_v he_o the_o psalm_n of_o miserere_fw-la and_o de_fw-fr profundis_fw-la his_o pater_n noster_fw-la etc._n etc._n 47._o this_o be_v stow_n narration_n whereby_o you_o see_v first_o the_o dishonesty_n and_o falsehood_n of_o the_o other_o chronicler_n that_o leave_v it_o quite_o out_o and_o the_o cozenage_n of_o john_n fox_n that_o only_o say_v it_o in_o two_o or_o three_o line_n and_o lie_v most_o shameful_o 120._o affirm_v that_o he_o have_v promise_v make_v unto_o he_o that_o though_o his_o head_n be_v upon_o the_o block_n he_o shall_v have_v his_o pardon_n if_o he_o will_v recant_v he_o consent_v thereunto_o which_o yet_o you_o see_v the_o duke_n protest_v the_o contrary_a upon_o his_o death_n that_o it_o be_v not_o for_o flattery_n or_o hope_n of_o life_n or_o upon_o any_o man_n instruction_n but_o only_o upon_o conscience_n first_o to_o save_v his_o own_o soul_n and_o then_o for_o desire_v to_o deliver_v his_o natural_a country_n from_o the_o infection_n of_o heresy_n and_o calamity_n thereon_o ensue_v 48._o and_o thus_o much_o of_o those_o man_n and_o their_o fruit_n who_o first_o plant_v this_o gosael_n but_o now_o as_o for_o the_o mean_n whereby_o these_o thing_n be_v wrought_v you_o have_v hear_v they_o before_o that_o they_o be_v all_o common_o by_o pull_v down_o thrust_v out_o dissolve_v of_o discipline_n give_v immunity_n from_o punishment_n to_o all_o sort_n of_o heretic_n and_o of_o marriage_n to_o loose_a priest_n and_o apostate_n friar_n and_o other_o like_a licentious_a liberty_n far_o different_a from_o the_o purity_n severity_n and_o strictness_n of_o life_n use_v by_o the_o first_o planter_n of_o christ_n gospel_n and_o as_o for_o the_o form_n and_o fashion_n of_o this_o new_a religion_n set_v up_o under_o this_o child-king_n it_o be_v as_o you_o have_v hear_v both_o their_o own_o man_n and_o we_o testify_v religion_n compound_v and_o patch_v up_o of_o all_o diversity_n of_o sect_n and_o religion_n as_o it_o please_v the_o composer_n many_o thing_n they_o take_v and_o retain_v of_o we_o as_o well_o in_o doctrine_n as_o in_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n some_o thing_n of_o the_o lutheran_n some_o other_o of_o the_o zwinglians_n some_o of_o the_o relic_n of_o king_n henry_n mutation_n as_o that_o of_o the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n a_o singular_a point_n of_o doctrine_n proper_a to_o england_n above_o all_o other_o nation_n but_o most_o of_o this_o composition_n be_v of_o their_o own_o invention_n which_o yet_o neither_o the_o protestant_n that_o remain_v in_o secret_a under_o queen_n mary_n do_v whole_o allow_v as_o appear_v by_o that_o which_o i_o have_v cite_v before_o of_o john_n rogers_n prophecy_n nor_o the_o other_o that_o begin_v again_o under_o her_o majesty_n that_o now_o be_v do_v whole_o readmit_v the_o form_n and_o fashion_n but_o make_v a_o new_a one_o of_o their_o own_o as_o by_o their_o communion-book_n be_v evident_a nor_o do_v the_o pure_a sort_n of_o calvinist_n in_o these_o day_n any_o way_n like_o or_o approve_v the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o as_o before_o we_o have_v show_v 49._o whereupon_o i_o may_v conclude_v as_o well_o this_o chapter_n as_o also_o this_o whole_a second_a part_n that_o neither_o under_o king_n henry_n the_o viii_o nor_o king_n edward_n the_o vi_o nor_o queen_n mary_n have_v john_n fox_n any_o distinct_a church_n extant_a or_o know_v to_o the_o world_n especial_o if_o his_o church_n be_v the_o puritan_n congregation_n as_o he_o will_v seem_v to_o signify_v in_o many_o place_n of_o his_o act_n and_o monument_n but_o whether_o he_o have_v any_o such_o church_n now_o visible_a under_o her_o majesty_n at_o this_o day_n in_o england_n and_o in_o what_o state_n and_o condition_n it_o stand_v i_o will_v not_o stand_v to_o inquire_v or_o discuss_v but_o do_v leave_v it_o to_o my_o lord_n of_o lambert_n and_o london_n who_o most_o it_o concern_v be_v sufficient_a for_o i_o to_o have_v show_v throughout_o all_o former_a christian_a age_n that_o john_n fox_n have_v have_v no_o church_n of_o any_o antiquity_n and_o consequent_o if_o he_o he_o have_v any_o now_o it_o must_v be_v a_o very_a young_a church_n and_o of_o so_o tender_a age_n as_o he_o may_v marry_v she_o to_o what_o sect_n or_o sectary_n he_o list_v for_o her_o youth_n and_o that_o with_o hope_n of_o brood_n and_o issue_n and_o so_o much_o of_o all_o this_o matter_n chap._n xiii_o the_o conclusion_n of_o both_o these_o former_a part_n together_o with_o a_o particular_a discourse_n of_o the_o notorious_a different_a proceed_v of_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n in_o search_v out_o the_o truth_n of_o matter_n in_o controversy_n by_o all_o that_o hitherto_o have_v be_v write_v and_o discourse_v good_a christian_a reader_n about_o the_o former_a subject_n of_o discern_v true_a christian_a religion_n and_o the_o way_n whereby_o to_o know_v and_o find_v the_o same_o i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o of_o thy_o prudence_n thou_o have_v observe_v a_o far_o different_a course_n hold_v by_o we_o that_o be_v catholic_n and_o our_o adversary_n in_o this_o behalf_n we_o seek_v to_o make_v matter_n plain_a evident_a easy_a perspicuous_a and_o demonstrable_a so_o far_o as_o may_v be_v even_o to_o the_o eye_n itself_o whereas_o our_o adversary_n and_o namely_o john_n fox_n according_a to_o that_o which_o by_o read_v this_o treatise_n you_o have_v see_v do_v altogether_o the_o contrary_a intangle_a himself_o and_o his_o reader_n with_o such_o obscurity_n difficulty_n and_o contradiction_n both_o about_o time_n matter_n and_o man_n as_o he_o find_v not_o where_o to_o begin_v nor_o where_o to_o end_v nor_o yet_o how_o to_o go_v forward_o or_o backward_o in_o that_o he_o have_v take_v in_o hand_n which_o i_o suppose_v to_o have_v be_v abundant_o show_v by_o that_o which_o hitherto_o have_v be_v write_v for_o whereas_o we_o for_o our_o part_n begin_v clear_o with_o the_o very_a first_o corpse_n or_o body_n of_o religion_n institute_v by_o christ_n himself_o and_o the_o first_o professor_n thereof_o that_o make_v a_o church_n or_o christian_a congregation_n and_o do_v never_o after_o leave_v the_o same_o but_o do_v deduce_v it_o visible_o and_o without_o interruption_n from_o that_o time_n to_o this_o and_o thereby_o do_v show_v the_o beginning_n and_o continuance_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o religion_n from_o their_o day_n to_o we_o john_n fox_n on_o the_o other_o side_n know_v not_o well_o either_o where_o to_o begin_v where_o to_o insist_v or_o where_o to_o end_v as_o sufficient_o you_o have_v see_v try_v for_o albeit_o in_o the_o tile_n of_o his_o book_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o will_v bring_v down_o his_o church_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n to_o we_o 8._o and_o then_o after_o in_o his_o protestation_n to_o the_o christian_a reader_n he_o do●h_v tell_v we_o far_o that_o his_o true_a church_n be_v different_a from_o the_o great_a visible_a roman_a church_n yet_o in_o the_o prosecution_n of_o his_o work_n he_o set_v forth_o and_o describe_v only_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o before_o we_o have_v declare_v and_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o name_v any_o distinct_a visible_a church_n of_o his_o own_o or_o other_o except_o only_o of_o such_o heretic_n as_o himself_o also_o condemn_v for_o such_o different_z from_o the_o say_a roman_a church_n for_o the_o space_n of_o almost_o 1200_o year_n write_n and_o then_o fall_v he_o into_o such_o a_o strange_a extravagant_a humour_n of_o build_v a_o new_a church_n for_o himself_o and_o he_o out_o of_o all_o sort_n and_o sect_n of_o late_a heretic_n as_o be_v not_o able_a in_o all_o point_n for_o very_a shame_n to_o allow_v their_o opinion_n which_o in_o many_o point_n be_v most_o absurd_a and_o contradictory_n both_o to_o he_o and_o we_o as_o also_o among_o themselves_o he_o find_v himself_o extreme_o entangle_v nor_o can_v tell_v which_o way_n to_o wind_n though_o he_o be_v a_o fox_n nor_o which_o way_n to_o turn_v his_o head_n but_o be_v force_v to_o double_a hither_o and_o thither_o to_o go_v forth_o and_o back_o say_v and_o unsay_v and_o to_o cast_v a_o hundred_o shadow_n of_o wrangle_a gloss_n upon_o the_o whole_a matter_n thereby_o to_o obscure_v the_o same_o to_o the_o eye_n and_o ear_n of_o his_o reader_n 2._o and_o final_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o religion_n that_o the_o difference_n between_o we_o and_o he_o and_o he_o to_o wit_n between_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n in_o this_o behalf_n be_v not_o much_o unlike_a to_o that_o of_o two_o cloth-seller_n of_o london_n the_o one_o a_o royal_a merchant_n which_o lay_v open_v his_o ware_n clear_o give_v into_o your_o
epist_n ep_n 25._o about_o fast_v virginity_n observation_n of_o holyday_n cent._n 2._o p._n 65._o cent._n 2._o p._n 65._o ignat._n epist_n ad_fw-la phil._n against_o martyrdom_n sacred_a virginity_n page_n 65._o cent._n 3._o p._n 86._o st._n cyprian_n accuse_v to_o hate_v woman_n cyp._n l._n de_fw-fr bono_fw-mi puditiae_fw-la cyp._n serm._n de_fw-fr nativ_fw-la christi_fw-la martyrdom_n page_n 83._o invocation_n of_o saint_n cent_z 4._o c._n 4._o p._n 295._o ibid._n p._n 304._o tradition_n monastical_a life_n relic_n page_n 300._o lib._n 2._o ad_fw-la marcell_n ephr._n l._n the_o luctamin_n spiritus_fw-la cap._n 2._o page_n 301._o amb_n serm._n 6._o de_fw-mi marg_n tom_fw-mi 3._o &_o in_o orat_fw-la funeb_fw-mi de_fw-fr obitu_fw-la theodosii_fw-la cent._n 4._o p._n 293._o the_o sum_n of_o this_o chapter_n and_o shameful_a shift_v of_o heretic_n cap._n 5._o num_fw-la 2_o supra_fw-la ibidem_fw-la bed._n l._n 1._o hist_o ang._n c._n 23._o &_o deinceps_fw-la malm._n de_fw-fr gest_n regum_fw-la ang._n l._n 1._o &_o de_fw-fr pont._n angl._n l._n 1._o galf._n mon._n hist_o ang._n l._n 11._o c._n 22._o huntingt_fw-fr hist_o l._n 3._o c._n 1._o two_o new_a wicked_a devise_v shift_n fox_n act._n &_o mon._n p._n 107._o coll_n 2._o n._n 84._o the_o defence_n of_o st._n gregory_n against_o heretic_n joannes_n diac._n in_o vita_fw-la gregor_n magni_fw-la isid_n de_fw-fr viris_fw-la illustris_fw-la c._n 27._o the_o testimony_n of_o isidorus_n concern_v st._n gregory_n hildef_n libel_n de_fw-fr viris_fw-la illustr_n the_o judment_n of_o st._n hildefonse_n fox_n act._n &_o mon._n col_fw-fr 2._o n._n 5._o p._n 105._o fox_n praise_v st_n agustin_n our_o apostle_n against_o his_o will._n fox_n act._n p._n 107._o col_fw-fr 1._o fox_n seek_v to_o discredit_v st._n augustin_n bed._n lib._n 1._o hist_o c._n 35._o jo._n bale_n cent_n 1._o scrip_n brit._n fol._n 35._o bales_n scurrulity_n against_o st._n augustin_n of_o the_o miracle_n wrought_v by_o st._n augustin_n greg._n l._n 7._o epist_n 30._o ind._n 1._o st._n gregory_n relation_n of_o english_a affair_n about_o the_o doctrine_n bring_v in_o by_o st._n augustin_n fox_n p._n 107._o col_fw-fr 2._o 2._o a_o wise_a consequence_n for_o that_o now_o also_o font_n will_v hardly_o suffice_v to_o baptize_v 10000_o in_o a_o day_n fox_n in_o protest_v p._n 9_o whether_o st._n augustin_n teach_v the_o saxon_n true_a religion_n holin_n in_o descript_n britan._n c._n 27._o col_fw-fr 1._o whether_o englishman_n be_v ever_o true_a christian_n before_o luther_n time_n holinsh_fw-mi ibid._n most_o vile_a blasphemy_n against_o the_o first_o christian_n englishman_n baleus_n descript_n britan._n cent_n 1._o fol._n 35._o ibid._n cent_n 5._o fol._n 245._o how_o john_n bale_n become_v a_o friar_n de_fw-fr reg._n juris_fw-la l._n 6._o c._n non_fw-la solum_fw-la &_o caet_fw-la in_o sum._n council_n trid._n sess_v 28._o cap._n 15._o how_o bale_n be_v unfriar_v and_o make_v a_o apostate_n bale_n ibid._n fox_n p._n 105._o col_fw-fr 2._o nu_fw-la 5._o bed._n l._n 1._o hist._n c._n 33._o the_o wicked_a intent_n of_o our_o sectary_n that_o protestant_n can_v be_v sure_a that_o they_o be_v christian_n according_a to_o fox_n and_o holinsh_v see_v the_o act_n of_o parliament_n anno_fw-la 31._o hen._n 8._o c._n 14._o &_o anno_o 32._o c._n 26._o &_o anno_o 34._o c._n 1._o enc._n 1._o c._n 3_o 4_o 5._o super_fw-la ibid._n ibid._n enc._n 1._o c._n 6.10_o and_o 12._o baleus_n descrip_n brit._n cent_n 1._o fol._n 35._o fox_n in_o his_o protestation_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n p._n 9_o 9_o sup._n cap._n 3._o sup._n c._n 1_o 3_o 5_o 6._o that_o rome_n change_v not_o her_o faith_n from_o eleutherius_fw-la to_o st._n gregory_n that_o the_o british_a christian_a faith_n be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o roman_n sup._n c._n 3._o fox_n pag._n 117._o col_fw-fr 2._o 2._o greg._n l._n 5._o ep_n 14._o 14._o philas_n l._n de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la haeres_fw-la greg._n l._n 3._o ep_n 32._o 32._o greg._n l._n 10._o in_o job_n c._n 29._o 29._o niceph._n l._n 18._o c._n 53._o bed._n l._n 1._o c._n 25._o greg._n l._n 2._o ep_n 36._o indict_v 10._o &_o l._n 9_o ep_n 61._o indict_v 4._o the_o presence_n of_o british_a bishop_n in_o foreign_a council_n council_n see_v syn._n 2._o arelaten_v to_o 1._o council_n and_o the_o subscription_n cap._n 2_o &_o 3_o athan._n apol._n 2._o cont_n arrian_n hilar._n de_fw-fr syn._n advers._fw-la arrian_n observation_n out_o of_o history_n chrys_n orat_fw-la cont_n gentes_fw-la quod_fw-la unus_fw-la est_fw-la deus_fw-la gild._n de_fw-fr excidio_fw-la britan._n c._n 26._o the_o britan_n use_n of_o take_v sanctuary_n &_o swear_v upon_o altar_n gildas_n ibid._n optat._n lib._n 6._o against_o king_n aurelius_n gild._a ibid._n pag._n 122._o against_o king_n maglocunus_fw-la for_o leave_v to_o be_v a_o monk._n fox_n act._n &_o mon._n p._n 103._o against_o priest_n that_o say_v mass_n seldom_o and_o ill_o gil._n ibid._n pag._n 132._o gildas_n ibid._n ibid._n p._n 133._o buy_v of_o priesthood_n act._n 2._o gildas_n ibid._n altar_n and_o sacrifice_n among_o the_o britan_n britan_n aug._n to_o 10._o ser_n 237._o &_o 251._o the_o temp_n &_o in_o council_n milevit_fw-la c._n 12._o &_o cartha_n 2._o c._n 3._o &_o council_n carthag_n 4._o c._n 84._o quibus_fw-la interfuit_fw-la augustinus_n epiph._n haeres_fw-la 50._o euseb_n l._n 5._o hist_o c._n 23._o &_o in_o vita_fw-la constant_n l._n 3._o c._n 17._o bed._n l._n 1.6_o c._n 27._o a_o church_n dedicate_v to_o st._n martin_n among_o the_o ancient_a christian_n britan_n a_o evident_a demonstration_n that_o the_o british_a religion_n agree_v with_o that_o of_o st._n augustin_n st._n german_n and_o st._n lupus_n bed._n l._n 1._o hist_o c._n 17_o 18_o 19_o 20_o 21._o that_o st._n german_n st._n lupus_n and_o st._n severus_n be_v roman_n catholic_o relic_n of_o saint_n ibid._n c._n 18._o ibid._n c._n 18._o the_o use_n of_o lent_n among_o the_o britan_n st._n dubritius_fw-la primate_n of_o britanny_n anno_fw-la 522._o galf._n hist_o brit._n l._n 9_o c._n 12._o and_o 13._o ibid._n p._n 70._o procession_n and_o organ_n bal._n descript_n eccles_n fol._n 30._o st._n david_n of_o wales_n anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 540._o camb._n in_o catal._n script_n britan._n polid._n l._n hist_o angl._n in_o fine_a fox_n in_o his_o protestation_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n p._n 9_o 19_o british_a bishop_n and_o doctor_n pretend_v by_o fox_n to_o have_v be_v protestant_n neither_o order_n nor_o argument_n good_a in_o fox_n fastidius_n priscus_n trit_a de_fw-fr script_n eccl._n bal._n fol._n 23._o st._n ninianus_n bed._n c._n 4._o hector_n boet._n l._n 7._o &_o 15._o joan._n fordonius_fw-la l._n 3._o c._n 9_o bal._n ibid._n st._n patricius_n st._n palladius_n bal._n ibid._n fol._n 23._o marian._n scotus_n in_o chron._n eodem_fw-la anno_fw-la 430._o prosper_v in_o chron._n ann_n 432._o &_o 434._o bed._n l._n 4._o hist_o cap._n 30._o st._n patricius_n bal._n descript_n frit_n cent._n 1._o fol._n 25._o ibid._n prosp_n cont_n lib._n collat._n in_o fine_a bed._n hist_o ang._n l._n 1._o c._n 13._o &_o in_o l._n de_fw-fr sex_n aetat_fw-la mar._n scot._n l._n 2._o sex_n aetat_fw-la a_o 432._o bacchiarius_n joan._n cap._n in_o catal_a ss_z brit._n polid._n virg._n 1._o histor_n harpesf_n harpesf_n 6._o cap._n 22._o congellus_fw-la bal._n fol._n 29._o kentegernus_fw-la bal._n fol._n 32._o jo._n capg_n in_o catal_a sanct._n brit._n st._n asaph_n receive_v his_o consecration_n from_o rome_n bal._n ibid._n f._n 34._o bal._n ibid._n f._n 135._o bed._n l._n 2_o hist_o c._n 2._o that_o the_o religion_n bring_v in_o by_o st._n augustin_n be_v catholic_n greg._n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la aug._n bed._n l._n 1._o hist._n c._n 18_o 19_o etc._n etc._n either_o no_o true_a church_n or_o religion_n be_v in_o st._n gregory_n time_n or_o else_o it_o be_v the_o roman_a the_o continuation_n of_o religion_n from_o st._n august_n downward_o bed._n hist_o ang._n l._n 1._o c._n 22._o st._n aug._n &_o his_o company_n land_v in_o the_o isle_n of_o thanet_n the_o 1_o kingdom_n of_o kent_n convert_v to_o christian_a faith_n anno_fw-la dom._n 600._o bed._n l._n 1._o hist_o malm._n l._n 2._o hist_o 2_o kingdom_n of_o east-saxons_a convert_v 604._o lib._n 2._o cap._n 5._o 3_o kingdom_n of_o the_o east-angle_n convert_v a_o dom._n 609._o malm._n l._n 1._o hist_o c._n 6._o the_o 4_o kingdom_n of_o northumber_n convert_v a_o 626._o 5_o kingdom_n of_o westsaxon_n convert_v 635._o 6_o kingdom_n of_o mercian_n convert_v 635._o 7_o kingdom_n of_o the_o south-saxons_a convert_v anno_fw-la 662._o marc._n 16._o greg._n hom_n 29._o de_fw-la festo_fw-la ascens_fw-la domini_fw-la marc._n 16._o why_o miracle_n cease_v afterward_o the_o primitive_a church_n of_o kent_n malm_n l._n 1._o de_fw-la gestis_fw-la pont._n ang._n pa._n 112._o a_o infalliable_a principle_n catholic_a religion_n plant_v in_o england_n with_o great_a power_n of_o miracle_n marc._n ultimo_fw-la one_o catholic_a religion_n under_o state_n that_o be_v
next_o age_n follow_v pope_n victor_n see_v the_o same_o inconvenience_n great_o to_o increase_v write_v a_o letter_n to_o polycrates_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n to_o gather_v a_o synod_n against_o it_o about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 249_o as_o eusebius_n testify_v and_o when_o he_o perceive_v that_o both_o he_o and_o divers_a asian_a bishop_n do_v stand_v more_o stiff_o in_o defence_n thereof_o than_o he_o expect_v yea_o that_o they_o begin_v not_o only_o to_o show_v obstinacy_n therein_o against_o the_o former_a decree_n of_o pope_n pius_n and_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n but_o to_o draw_v near_o also_o to_o the_o very_a formality_n of_o heresy_n before_o mention_v to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o observe_v the_o fourteen_o day_n nay_o further_o that_o it_o be_v ex_fw-la evangelii_n praescripto_fw-la &_o secundum_fw-la regulam_fw-la &_o normam_fw-la fidei_fw-la by_o the_o prescription_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n and_o norm_a of_o faith_n 22._o as_o the_o say_v polycrates_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o pope_n victor_n write_v when_o victor_n i_o say_v see_v this_o he_o resolve_v after_o counsel_n take_v by_o conference_n with_o divers_a synod_n both_o of_o the_o west_n and_o east_n church_n easter_n to_o excommunicate_v those_o asian_a bishop_n that_o resist_v if_o they_o will_v not_o agree_v which_o determination_n albeit_o irenaeus_n and_o some_o other_o at_o that_o time_n do_v mislike_v and_o dehort_v pope_n victor_n from_o it_o as_o a_o thing_n perilous_a and_o scandalous_a and_o subject_a to_o many_o trouble_n as_o eusebius_n report_v yet_o do_v never_o any_o of_o they_o say_v that_o he_o can_v not_o do_v it_o but_o rather_o when_o he_o have_v do_v it_o indeed_o they_o do_v accommodate_v themselves_o thereunto_o both_o in_o west_n and_o east_n ratify_v and_o confirm_v the_o same_o by_o divers_a particular_a synod_n 36._o as_o nicephorus_n recount_v to_o wit_n in_o jerusalem_n caesarea_n tyrus_n ptolomais_n corinth_n lion_n of_o france_n where_o st._n irenaeus_n himself_o be_v bishop_n and_o other_o place_n etc._n etc._n 29._o and_o final_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a confirm_v the_o same_o as_o the_o father_n thereof_o do_v testify_v by_o their_o particular_a letter_n to_o the_o clergy_n of_o alexandria_n who_o word_n be_v these_o as_o theodoretus_n relate_v they_o 9_o scitote_fw-la controversiam_fw-la de_fw-la paschate_n susceptam_fw-la prudenter_fw-la sedatam_fw-la esse_fw-la ita_fw-la ut_fw-la omnes_fw-la fratres_fw-la qui_fw-la orientem_fw-la incolunt_fw-la jam_fw-la romanos_fw-la nos_fw-la &_o omnes_fw-la vos_fw-la sint_fw-la consentientibus_fw-la animus_fw-la in_o eodem_fw-la celebrando_fw-la deinceps_fw-la secuturi_fw-la you_o must_v understand_v that_o the_o controversy_n about_o celebrate_v easter_n take_v in_o hand_n by_o we_o be_v prudent_o pacify_v so_o as_o all_o our_o brethren_n that_o inhabit_v the_o east-part_n will_v follow_v for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v the_o roman_n or_o the_o roman_a church_n Ê‹s_o and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n and_o all_o you_o of_o the_o egyptian_a church_n with_o full_a consent_n of_o mind_n in_o celebrate_v the_o same_o feast_n note_v here_o that_o the_o council_n do_v put_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o first_o place_n even_o before_o themselves_o and_o then_o themselves_o and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n in_o the_o second_o place_n and_o those_o of_o alexandria_n in_o the_o three_o which_o be_v another_o reckon_n than_o our_o heretic_n be_v wont_a to_o make_v of_o the_o roman_a church_n 30._o constantine_n also_o the_o emperor_n emperor_n write_v his_o letter_n to_o all_o bishop_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n that_o have_v not_o be_v present_a at_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a nor_o can_v come_v yield_v account_n unto_o they_o with_o great_a christian_a modesty_n and_o zeal_n of_o the_o chief_a matter_n handle_v in_o that_o council_n where_o come_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o decree_n of_o celebrate_v easter_n he_o say_v thus_o 17._o cum_fw-la de_fw-la sanctissimo_fw-la festo_fw-la paschatis_fw-la disceptaretur_fw-la communi_fw-la omnium_fw-la sententia_fw-la videbatur_fw-la rectum_fw-la esse_fw-la ut_fw-la omnes_fw-la ubique_fw-la uno_fw-la eodemque_fw-la die_fw-la illud_fw-la celebrarent_fw-la when_o the_o question_n be_v propose_v about_o celebrate_v the_o holy_a feast_n of_o easter_n it_o seem_v good_a by_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o all_o that_o be_v present_a in_o this_o council_n that_o all_o christian_n shall_v celebrate_v the_o same_o in_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_a day_n which_o day_n he_o show_v to_o be_v sunday_n and_o refute_v at_o large_a the_o custom_n of_o celebrate_v the_o same_o with_o the_o jew_n upon_o the_o fourteen_o day_n of_o the_o moon_n though_o it_o be_v a_o feria_n conclude_v thus_o 8._o quae_fw-la cum_fw-la ita_fw-la se_fw-la habent_fw-la etc._n etc._n which_o thing_n be_v so_o do_v you_o willing_o embrace_v this_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n as_o a_o great_a gift_n of_o god_n and_o a_o commandment_n send_v from_o heaven_n forasmuch_o as_o whatsoever_o be_v decree_v by_o holy_a council_n of_o bishop_n that_o must_v be_v ascribe_v to_o god_n holy_a will._n wherefore_o do_v you_o declare_v and_o denounce_v unto_o all_o our_o dear_a brethren_n live_v among_o you_o the_o decree_n of_o this_o council_n and_o namely_o the_o decree_n of_o celebrate_v this_o holy_a feast_n etc._n etc._n 31._o thus_o write_v our_o good_a british_a emperor_n constantine_n with_o a_o far_o different_a spirit_n from_o those_o christian_a inhabitant_n of_o britanny_n who_o afterward_o defend_v the_o contrary_a custom_n without_o respect_n of_o holy_a decree_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n sectary_n but_o far_o more_o opposite_a and_o contrary_n be_v the_o wicked_a spirit_n of_o john_n bale_n john_n fox_n and_o other_o such_o latter_a brutish_a rather_o than_o british_n sectary_n that_o even_o in_o our_o day_n after_o that_o the_o roman_n catholic_n use_n have_v be_v receive_v for_o thirteen_o hundred_o year_n since_o the_o say_a council_n they_o be_v content_a for_o hatred_n of_o the_o name_n of_o rome_n to_o bring_v it_o into_o controversy_n again_o and_o to_o allow_v rather_o the_o jewish_a use_n and_o to_o praise_v they_o that_o defend_v it_o in_o our_o country_n as_o you_o have_v hear_v reject_v and_o deface_v other_o that_o stand_v for_o the_o catholic_a party_n though_o never_o otherwise_o so_o famous_a and_o illustrious_a for_o their_o learning_n and_o virtue_n as_o beda_n agilbert_n wilfrid_n and_o other_o the_o chief_a pillar_n of_o our_o primitive_a english_a church_n be_v but_o this_o be_v their_o shameless_a spirit_n to_o dishonour_v wherein_o possible_o they_o can_v their_o forefather_n 32._o and_o thus_o much_o of_o this_o matter_n about_o the_o first_o conversion_n or_o preach_v of_o christian_a faith_n in_o britanny_n under_o the_o apostle_n now_o will_v we_o pass_v to_o the_o more_o public_a conversion_n of_o our_o land_n under_o king_n lucius_n which_o as_o in_o my_o ward-word_n i_o call_v the_o first_o in_o respect_n of_o our_o two_o public_a conversion_n from_o paganism_n so_o do_v i_o here_o name_v it_o the_o second_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o former_a preach_v in_o the_o apostle_n time._n about_o which_o conversion_n though_o in_o effect_v our_o modern_a heretic_n dare_v not_o deny_v the_o same_o yet_o shall_v you_o hear_v no_o less_o wrangle_v of_o they_o about_o this_o than_o the_o former_a for_o the_o great_a grief_n they_o receive_v in_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v say_v or_o think_v to_o come_v from_o rome_n chap._n iu._n of_o the_o second_o conversion_n of_o britanny_n under_o king_n lucius_n by_o pope_n eleutherius_fw-la and_o teacher_n send_v from_o he_o about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 180_o and_o of_o the_o notorious_a absurd_a cavillation_n of_o heretic_n about_o the_o same_o also_o all_z that_o hitherto_o have_v be_v speak_v be_v about_o the_o first_o preach_v of_o christian_a religion_n in_o britanny_n by_o particular_a man_n within_o the_o first_o age_n or_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n which_o our_o roman_a enemy_n only_o upon_o envy_n and_o animosity_n without_o any_o one_o testimony_n of_o antiquity_n will_v needs_o take_v from_o rome_n and_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o give_v it_o to_o the_o grecian_n of_o asia_n and_o to_o the_o east_n part_n as_o you_o have_v hear_v now_o do_v follow_v two_o other_o more_o famous_a and_o public_a conversion_n of_o the_o say_a island_n under_o the_o two_o renown_a pope_n of_o rome_n and_o by_o their_o special_a industry_n which_o be_v acknowledge_v and_o register_v by_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n and_o do_v so_o much_o press_v the_o spleen_n and_o move_v the_o gall_n of_o our_o rome-biter_n as_o they_o leave_v no_o corner_n of_o their_o wit_n unsifted_a to_o discredit_v or_o reject_v the_o same_o religion_n 2._o the_o first_o conversion_n be_v as_o the_o warder_n say_v under_o pope_n eleutherius_fw-la towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o second_o age_n after_o christ_n when_o king_n lucius_n of_o britanny_n hear_v of_o the_o
great_a and_o horrible_a persecution_n of_o christian_n in_o rome_n and_o of_o their_o often_o martyring_n and_o that_o they_o remain_v constant_a notwitstanding_n in_o their_o christian_a faith_n to_o all_o man_n admiration_n and_o that_o their_o number_n do_v increase_v daily_o even_o of_o the_o chief_a nobility_n and_o that_o two_o worthy_a senator_n in_o particular_a pertinax_n and_o tretellius_n have_v be_v late_o convert_v from_o paganism_n to_o profess_v christ_n yea_o that_o the_o emperor_n himself_o marcus_z aurelius_n then_o live_v begin_v to_o be_v a_o friend_n to_o christian_n in_o respect_n of_o a_o famous_a victory_n obtain_v by_o their_o prayer_n 2._o all_o which_o thing_n baronius_n show_v the_o emperor_n legate_n in_o england_n to_o have_v tell_v lucius_n for_o these_o cause_n i_o say_v and_o for_o that_o he_o hate_v the_o roman_n and_o their_o old_a religion_n to_o who_o he_o understand_v the_o christian_n to_o be_v contrary_a he_o resolve_v to_o be_v instruct_v in_o that_o religion_n and_o understand_v the_o chief_a fountain_n thereof_o to_o be_v at_o rome_n content_v not_o himself_o either_o with_o instruction_n he_o may_v have_v at_o home_n by_o christian_n there_o nor_o yet_o from_o the_o christian_a bishop_n flourish_v then_o in_o france_n as_o st._n irenaeus_n photinus_n and_o other_o but_o send_v man_n to_o rome_n to_o demand_v preacher_n of_o eleutherius_fw-la the_o pope_n who_o direct_v to_o he_o two_o roman_n convert_v name_v fugatius_n and_o damianus_n by_o who_o the_o say_a king_n and_o his_o country_n be_v convert_v about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 180_o as_o john_n fox_n hold_v but_o as_o baronius_n think_v 183_o from_o who_o pamelius_n genebrard_n nauclerus_fw-la and_o other_o chronographer_n do_v little_a dissent_n though_o marianus_n scotus_n do_v put_v it_o in_o the_o year_n 177._o and_o this_o conversion_n of_o britanny_n under_o king_n lucius_n be_v testify_v both_o by_o the_o ancient_a book_n of_o the_o life_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n attribute_v by_o some_o to_o damasus_n as_o also_o by_o the_o ancient_a ecclesiastical_a table_n and_o martyrology_n yet_o extant_a as_o baronius_n prove_v and_o by_o 1._o st._n bede_n in_o his_o history_n of_o england_n and_o after_o he_o by_o ado_n archbishop_n of_o trever_n and_o marianus_n scotus_n anno_fw-la 177_o and_o all_o author_n since_o 3._o this_o then_o be_v so_o and_o john_n fox_n the_o father_n of_o lie_v not_o ●●●ing_v open_o to_o impugn_v the_o same_o yet_o grant_v he_o the_o thing_n with_o such_o difficulty_n and_o straining_n and_o tell_v the_o story_n with_o so_o many_o hem_n and_o haw_n if_n and_o and_n interpretation_n and_o restriction_n as_o a_o man_n may_v see_v how_o great_o it_o grieve_v he_o to_o confess_v the_o substance_n thereof_o i_o mean_v of_o this_o second_o conversion_n by_o pope_n eleutherius_fw-la and_o therefore_o he_o turn_v himself_o hither_o and_o thither_o now_o grant_v now_o deny_v now_o doubt_v now_o equivocate_a as_o be_v both_o ridiculous_a and_o shameful_a to_o behold_v for_o as_o on_o the_o one_o side_n he_o will_v glad_o deny_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o story_n so_o on_o the_o other_o side_n be_v press_v with_o the_o authority_n before_o allege_a and_o general_a consent_n of_o all_o writer_n he_o dare_v not_o to_o utter_v himself_o plain_o but_o endeavour_v to_o leave_v the_o reader_n in_o suspense_n and_o doubtful_a whether_o it_o be_v true_a or_o no_o which_o be_v the_o effect_n most_o desire_v common_o of_o heretical_a writer_n to_o bring_v all_o thing_n in_o doubt_n and_o question_n and_o there_o to_o leave_v the_o reader_n 2._o and_o to_o this_o purpose_n do_v the_o fox_n tell_v we_o first_o that_o divers_a author_n of_o late_a time_n do_v not_o agree_v about_o the_o certain_a year_n wherein_o this_o conversion_n of_o king_n lucius_n do_v happen_v some_o saying_n more_o and_o some_o saying_n less_o but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o thing_n itself_o for_o that_o about_o the_o particular_a time_n wherein_o thing_n be_v do_v there_o be_v often_o find_v no_o small_a variety_n among_o principal_a writer_n and_o about_o principal_a point_n and_o mystery_n of_o our_o faith_n as_o about_o the_o come_n of_o the_o magi_n and_o martyrdom_n of_o the_o infant_n about_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n baptism_n yea_o also_o of_o his_o passion_n what_o year_n and_o day_n each_o of_o these_o thing_n happen_v which_o yet_o do_v not_o derogate_v from_o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o 4._o and_o this_o be_v his_o first_o cavil_v or_o rather_o light_n skirmish_n cavil_v whereby_o he_o will_v somewhat_o batter_v or_o weaken_v the_o credit_n of_o the_o story_n before_o he_o come_v to_o lay_v the_o full_a assault_n which_o ensue_v immediate_o with_o seven_o double_a cannon_n plant_v by_o he_o which_o he_o call_v seven_o good_a conjectural_a reason_n against_o the_o tradition_n of_o antiquity_n about_o this_o conversion_n of_o britanny_n from_o pope_n eleutherius_fw-la wherein_o notwithstanding_o you_o must_v note_v that_o he_o propose_v the_o controversy_n as_o though_o his_o purpose_n be_v only_o to_o prove_v that_o pope_n eleutherius_fw-la be_v not_o the_o first_o that_o convert_v england_n which_o thing_n rome_n as_o it_o may_v be_v grant_v in_o the_o sense_n before_o often_o touch_v if_o he_o speak_v or_o mean_v plain_o so_o find_v he_o to_o deal_v guileful_o and_o to_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v in_o the_o end_n as_o appear_v by_o his_o conclusion_n that_o eleutherius_fw-la convert_v not_o king_n lucius_n at_o all_o but_o only_o help_v perhaps_o to_o convert_v he_o or_o to_o instruct_v he_o better_o in_o religion_n be_v a_o christian_a before_o i_o be_o constrain_v to_o examine_v brief_o the_o force_n or_o rather_o fraud_n and_o folly_n of_o these_o his_o seven_o argument_n to_o the_o end_n you_o may_v judge_v thereby_o how_o he_o behave_v himself_o in_o so_o main_a a_o volume_n as_o his_o act_n and_o monument_n do_v contain_v see_v that_o in_o this_o one_o matter_n he_o bear_v himself_o so_o fond_o and_o malicious_o and_o for_o brevity_n sake_n i_o will_v reduce_v the_o say_v seven_o argument_n to_o three_o general_a head_n or_o kind_n show_v first_o that_o all_o be_v impertinent_a second_o that_o some_o beside_o impertinency_n have_v also_o gross_a ignorance_n three_o that_o other_o beside_o these_o two_o commendation_n have_v fraud_n and_o plain_a imposture_n in_o they_o 5._o to_o the_o first_o kind_n of_o impertinent_a do_v appertain_v his_o four_o five_o and_o six_o argument_n handle_v by_o i_o before_o against_o the_o magdeburgian_o to_o wit_n that_o st._n bede_n say_v in_o his_o time_n that_o the_o britan_n celebrate_a easter_n after_o the_o fashion_n of_o the_o east-church_n that_o petrus_n cluniacensis_fw-la testify_v the_o same_o in_o his_o day_n of_o some_o scot_n impertinent_a and_o that_o nicephorus_n say_v that_o simon_n zelotes_n preach_v the_o gospel_n in_o england_n all_o which_o three_o argument_n as_o they_o do_v serve_v to_o no_o purpose_n here_o but_o to_o show_v that_o fox_n steal_v all_o out_o of_o the_o magdeburgian_o so_o no_o other_o answer_n be_v needful_a to_o be_v make_v unto_o they_o than_o that_o which_o before_o have_v be_v write_v see_v that_o all_o be_v grant_v that_o here_o be_v say_v yet_o prove_v it_o nothing_o that_o the_o faith_n of_o britanny_n come_v not_o from_o rome_n and_o consequent_o all_o be_v impertinent_a 95._o 6._o of_o the_o second_o sort_n both_o impertinent_a and_o ignorant_a argument_n be_v his_o second_o and_o three_o probation_n my_o second_o reason_n be_v say_v he_o out_o of_o tertullian_n who_o live_v near-about_a or_o rather_o somewhat_o before_o this_o eleutherius_fw-la testify_v in_o his_o book_n contra_fw-la judaeos_fw-la that_o the_o gospel_n be_v disperse_v abroad_o by_o the_o sound_n of_o apostle_n in_o divers_a country_n and_o then_o among_o other_o kingdom_n he_o recite_v also_o the_o part_n of_o britanny_n etc._n etc._n thus_o you_o see_v how_o impertinent_a it_o be_v to_o the_o purpose_n we_o have_v in_o hand_n for_o that_o it_o conclude_v not_o but_o that_o pope_n eleutherius_fw-la after_o the_o apostle_n time_n may_v convert_v king_n lucius_n and_o his_o people_n public_o by_o fugatius_n and_o damianus_n as_o we_o affirm_v and_o then_o second_o it_o include_v notorious_a error_n and_o ignorance_n 42._o in_o that_o he_o say_v tertullian_n live_v before_o eleutherius_fw-la for_o that_o it_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o tertullian_n own_o work_n and_o word_n especial_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr pallio_fw-la wherein_o he_o yield_v the_o reason_n wherefore_o he_o change_v his_o habit_n from_o a_o gown_n to_o a_o cloak_n as_o christian_n be_v wont_a to_o do_v in_o those_o day_n that_o he_o be_v convert_v to_o the_o christian_a faith_n in_o the_o ten_o year_n of_o pope_n victor_n that_o be_v successor_n to_o eleutherius_fw-la which_o be_v anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 196._o and_o moreover_o he_o write_v